Selected quad for the lemma: power_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
power_n apostle_n church_n key_n 4,850 5 9.8788 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10345 The summe of the conference betwene Iohn Rainoldes and Iohn Hart touching the head and the faith of the Church. Wherein by the way are handled sundrie points, of the sufficiencie and right expounding of the Scriptures, the ministerie of the Church, the function of priesthood, the sacrifice of the masse, with other controuerises of religion: but chiefly and purposely the point of Church-gouernment ... Penned by Iohn Rainoldes, according to the notes set downe in writing by them both: perused by Iohn Hart, and (after things supplied, & altered, as he thought good) allowed for the faithfull report of that which past in conference betwene them. Whereunto is annexed a treatise intitled, Six conclusions touching the Holie Scripture and the Church, writen by Iohn Rainoldes. With a defence of such thinges as Thomas Stapleton and Gregorie Martin haue carped at therein. Rainolds, John, 1549-1607.; Hart, John, d. 1586. aut; Rainolds, John, 1549-1607. Sex theses de Sacra Scriptura, et Ecclesia. English. aut 1584 (1584) STC 20626; ESTC S115546 763,703 768

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

all_o the_o coast_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o reconcile_a any_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a of_o excommunicate_v suspend_v or_o inflict_v other_o censure_n and_o penalty_n on_o any_o that_o offend_v yea_o on_o prince_n and_o nation_n final_o of_o all_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a sort_n for_o govern_v of_o the_o church_n even_o what_o soever_o touch_v either_o preach_n of_o doctrine_n or_o practise_v of_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n and_o all_o this_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n a_o power_n very_o great_a in_o weight_n and_o large_a in_o compass_n for_o one_o man_n to_o wéeld_v yea_o for_o one_o apostle_n much_o more_o for_o one_o bishop_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v he_o or_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n you_o say_v that_o you_o call_v he_o a_o head_n improper_o i_o ween_v you_o give_v this_o power_n improper_o to_o he_o also_o for_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n you_o can_v never_o prove_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o proper_o the_o second_o chapter_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o supremacy_n pretend_v to_o be_v make_v by_o christ_n unto_o peter_n 1_o in_o the_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n 2_o &_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o expound_v the_o scripture_n how_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o they_o may_v be_v know_v and_o who_o shall_v judge_v thereof_o 3_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o key_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v promise_v by_o christ_n to_o peter_n and_o in_o peter_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n hart_n how_o large_a and_o great_a soever_o this_o power_n and_o supremacy_n do_v seem_v in_o your_o eye_n division_n it_o belong_v proper_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o be_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o reason_n which_o before_o i_o make_v s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o power_n over_o bishop_n that_o he_o have_v over_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o by_o consequent_a of_o their_o diocese_n that_o be_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n remember_v in_o what_o sense_n you_o take_v the_o name_n of_o head_n and_o i_o deny_v both_o the_o proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n hart._n i_o will_v prove_v they_o both_o and_o first_o the_o former_a christ_n do_v promise_n peter_n that_o he_o will_v make_v he_o head_n therefore_o he_o do_v make_v he_o rainoldes_n he_o do_v not_o promise_v he_o hart._n 2._o christ_n do_v say_v unto_o he_o 16.18_o tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o peter_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n therefore_o he_o do_v promise_v he_o rainoldes_n the_o reason_n do_v not_o follow_v but_o why_o do_v you_o english_a it_o so_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o peter_n 47._o your_o doctor_n be_v wont_a to_o cite_v it_o thou_o be_v peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n and_o to_o that_o rock_n you_o tie_v all_o do_v you_o fear_v shipwreck_n there_o now_o hart._n no_o sir_n but_o to_o make_v our_o ankerholde_a the_o sure_a the_o which_o be_v fasten_v on_o s._n peter_n doctor_n allen_n think_v good_a that_o in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n into_o our_o tongue_n which_o we_o be_v about_o at_o rheims_n latin_a it_o shall_v be_v thus_o english_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o peter_n the_o which_o i_o rather_o follow_v than_o the_o other_o of_o the_o rock_n because_o it_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o the_o original_n rainoldes_n it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o original_n be_v the_o greek_a text_n and_o that_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereto_o your_o latin_a old_a translation_n agree_v with_o petrus_n and_o petra_fw-la as_o yourself_o allege_v it_o the_o word_n of_o both_o which_o though_o they_o differ_v not_o so_o much_o as_o peter_n and_o rock_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o one_o as_o your_o peter_n and_o peter_n hart._n although_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d differ_v in_o termination_n yet_o they_o be_v one_o in_o meaning_n and_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signifi_v a_o rock_n so_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o athenian_a language_n and_o it_o must_v be_v note_v that_o christ_n speak_v in_o hebrew_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o syriake_n tongue_n wherein_o the_o name_n that_o he_o give_v peter_n be_v 1.42_o cephas_n now_o in_o the_o syriake_n translation_n of_o the_o testament_n that_o word_n be_v the_o same_o without_o difference_n in_o both_o place_n 3._o for_o thus_o be_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v thou_o be_v cephas_n and_o upon_o this_o cephas_n or_o thou_o be_v rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n for_o cephas_n in_o the_o syriake_n do_v signify_v a_o rock_n as_o 6._o guido_n fabricius_n a_o learned_a linguist_n show_v wherefore_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v be_v the_o same_o in_o greek_a and_o so_o we_o may_v keep_v it_o well_o in_o both_o place_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o peter_n rainoldes_n the_o word_n which_o you_o allege_v be_v not_o of_o the_o syriake_n translation_n they_o be_v hebrew_n but_o as_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v one_o in_o both_o place_n so_o the_o syriake_n i_o grant_v have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o they_o both_o and_o i_o glad_o take_v it_o because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v in_o that_o tongue_n as_o a_o exposition_n of_o his_o word_n to_o peter_n yet_o i_o note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o although_o your_o 4._o council_n of_o trent_n have_v allow_v the_o latin_a old_a translation_n alone_o as_o authentical_a and_o have_v decree_v thereof_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v or_o presume_v under_o any_o pretence_n to_o reject_v it_o notwithstanding_o you_o yourselves_o will_v depart_v from_o it_o and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o the_o original_n which_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v but_o also_o to_o translation_n if_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o make_v for_o you_o in_o any_o point_n more_o than_o your_o old_a do_v hart._n we_o do_v not_o reject_v that_o authentical_a translation_n but_o open_a the_o sense_n of_o it_o by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o gréeke_n with_o the_o syriake_n rainoldes_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o in_o any_o point_n against_o you_o this_o answer_n will_v not_o serve_v we_o it_o will_v be_v account_v a_o colour_n or_o pretence_n such_o as_o your_o council_n have_v condemn_v hart._n you_o do_v we_o great_a injury_n in_o that_o you_o seem_v to_o make_v it_o all_o one_o to_o reject_v the_o authentical_a latin_a and_o to_o take_v advantage_n for_o ourselves_o out_o of_o the_o original_a text_n rainoldes_n for_o yourselves_o nay_o i_o make_v not_o that_o all_o one_o i_o say_v if_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o not_o if_o you_o shall_v do_v so_o for_o do_v you_o what_o you_o listen_v and_o all_o must_v be_v soothe_v as_o agree_v with_o your_o latin_a and_o open_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v take_v advantage_n for_o ourselves_o by_o the_o original_a text_n our_o advantage_n will_v be_v nip_v on_o the_o head_n as_o a_o pretence_n for_o example_n andreas_n masius_n a_o learned_a man_n of_o you_o have_v write_v a_o commentary_n on_o the_o book_n of_o josua_n in_o the_o which_o he_o launce_v your_o authentical_a latin_a almost_o in_o every_o chapter_n yea_o 15._o he_o say_v that_o s._n jerom_n if_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v translate_v sciens_fw-la witting_o a_o place_n against_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o hebrew_n that_o he_o may_v vouch_v a_o fancy_n of_o his_o own_o thereby_o yet_o lovaniensis_n the_o popish_a censor_n who_o allow_v it_o to_o the_o print_n witness_v of_o that_o commentary_n that_o editionem_fw-la it_o lighten_v and_o open_v the_o common_a old_a translation_n great_o let_v we_o do_v much_o less_o let_v we_o but_o raze_v the_o credit_n of_o it_o and_o will_v you_o give_v that_o censure_n of_o we_o nay_o if_o we_o do_v note_n that_o 8.21_o where_o your_o old_a translation_n have_v of_o the_o frame_n or_o imagination_n of_o man_n hart_n that_o it_o be_v prona_fw-la prone_a to_o evil_n the_o hebrew_n text_n have_v not_o prone_a to_o evil_a but_o 〈◊〉_d evil_a 2._o the_o censure_n of_o coolein_n will_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v far_o consultius_fw-la better_a to_o say_v as_o your_o old_a translation_n say_v prone_a to_o evil_n and_o will_v fetch_v in_o also_o the_o rabbin_n of_o the_o jew_n not_o to_o
that_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n you_o challenge_v as_o proper_a unto_o peter_n only_o for_o as_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n touch_v christ_n show_v their_o common_a faith_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o one_o so_o the_o answer_n of_o christ_n direct_v unto_o one_o contain_v that_o blessing_n that_o shall_v be_v common_a to_o they_o all_o and_o this_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o to_o the_o ephesian_n member_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o 2.20_o they_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o prophet_n not_o of_o peter_n only_o but_o of_o the_o apostle_n who_o lie_v the_o same_o foundation_n all_o that_o peter_n do_v and_o thereupon_o be_v call_v all_o of_o they_o 21.14_o foundation_n and_o the_o church_n rely_v upon_o their_o doctrine_n that_o be_v the_o christian_a faith_n the_o only_a and_o sure_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o truth_n have_v force_v praevalebunt_fw-la your_o own_o mouth_n to_o witness_v may_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v build_v on_o they_o even_o as_o well_o on_o all_o of_o they_o as_o on_o peter_n wherefore_o by_o the_o proportion_n that_o you_o grate_n upon_o of_o a_o foundation_n to_o a_o house_n and_o a_o head_n to_o a_o body_n as_o christ_n be_v head_n only_o so_o be_v he_o the_o only_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o name_n of_o foundation_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n so_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n do_v prove_v they_o twelve_o head_n you_o must_v seek_v therefore_o some_o other_o foundation_n of_o peter_n headship_n over_o they_o for_o neither_o the_o name_n of_o stone_n that_o christ_n give_v he_o nor_o the_o word_n of_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o that_o stone_n prove_v that_o he_o promise_v he_o to_o make_v he_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n hart._n division_n not_o in_o your_o judgement_n but_o in_o i_o they_o do_v and_o so_o do_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o promise_n also_o which_o christ_n make_v unto_o he_o 16.19_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 1._o for_o by_o the_o name_n of_o key_n be_v signify_v the_o fullness_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o to_o give_v the_o fullness_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v to_o make_v he_o head_n therefore_o christ_n do_v promise_v to_o make_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n these_o key_n will_v not_o open_v more_o in_o the_o house_n than_o do_v the_o foundation_n lie_v in_o the_o build_n for_o if_o you_o mean_v by_o fullness_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n the_o lawful_a power_n of_o the_o apostleship_n than_o the_o which_o no_o great_a be_v ever_o give_v to_o any_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n give_v it_o both_o to_o peter_n and_o to_o every_o apostle_n if_o you_o mean_v such_o power_n as_o the_o pope_n claim_v by_o angliae_fw-la fullness_n of_o power_n a_o terra_fw-la sovereign_a power_n not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o temporal_a christ_n give_v it_o neither_o to_o peter_n nor_o to_o any_o apostle_n so_o that_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n all_o be_v head_n in_o the_o latter_a none_o and_o thus_o your_o headship_n prove_v by_o neither_o but_o what_o soever_o you_o mean_v by_o fullness_n of_o power_n this_o be_v clear_a and_o certain_a that_o our_o saviour_n promise_v no_o more_o power_n to_o peter_n than_o he_o mean_v and_o perform_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o what_o soever_o he_o promise_v to_o he_o he_o promise_v in_o he_o to_o they_o for_o as_o among_o they_o when_o they_o be_v all_o ask_v 15._o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o peter_n answer_v alone_o 16._o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n so_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o alone_o 19_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o though_o he_o have_v alone_o receive_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v whereas_o he_o make_v that_o answer_n one_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o all_o and_o receive_v this_o power_n one_o together_o with_o they_o all_o wherefore_o sigh_v no_o more_o be_v promise_v then_o give_v and_o equal_a power_n be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n this_o promise_n prove_v not_o your_o headship_n you_o must_v bring_v we_o forth_o some_o better_a evidence_n or_o else_o your_o title_n will_v be_v naught_o hart._n the_o evidence_n be_v good_a for_o it_o say_v in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n that_o christ_n will_v give_v the_o key_n to_o peter_n then_o the_o which_o what_o can_v be_v more_o manifest_o speak_v rainoldes_n in_o show_n to_o the_o simple_a chief_o when_o they_o see_v the_o matter_n set_v forth_o as_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n 1577._o where_o christ_n be_v paint_v out_o not_o as_o promise_v peter_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o key_n but_o as_o give_v they_o to_o he_o at_o that_o present_a and_o give_v they_o to_o he_o alone_o not_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n paraphrase_a feat_o thereto_o by_o some_o poet_n be_v thou_o the_o prince_n of_o pastor_n to_o thou_o alone_o be_v give_v the_o power_n to_o shut_v the_o door_n of_o heaven_n and_o eke_o to_o set_v it_o open_v pastorum_fw-la princeps_fw-la esto_fw-la tibi_fw-la ius_fw-la datur_fw-la uni_fw-la claudere_fw-la celestes_fw-la &_o reserare_fw-la fores_fw-la hart._n nay_o the_o very_a word_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o scripture_n be_v plain_o in_o show_n for_o we_o then_o for_o you_o which_o also_o may_v be_v note_v in_o other_o point_n of_o controversy_n between_o you_o and_o us._n as_o about_o the_o real_a presence_n 26_o this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o again_o 5●_n the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n he_o say_v not_o it_o be_v but_o the_o sign_n of_o my_o flesh_n rainoldes_n neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v so_o mean_a in_o this_o of_o flesh_n and_o bread_n for_o we_o teach_v that_o 32._o the_o true_a bread_n 33._o the_o bread_n of_o god_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n 48._o be_v christ_n even_o 51._o the_o flesh_n the_o very_a flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v christ_n incarnate_a the_o great_a wrong_n 27._o they_o do_v we_o who_o lie_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o expound_v it_o not_o of_o the_o thing_n but_o of_o a_o sign_n themselves_o indeed_o guilty_a thereof_o expound_v it_o of_o a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n where_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o christ_n himself_o 1.14_o the_o word_n that_o be_v make_v flesh_n but_o what_o if_o in_o the_o other_o place_n and_o sundry_a mo_z the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a in_o show_n for_o you_o then_o for_o we_o it_o be_v not_o the_o show_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n that_o do_v import_v the_o truth_n and_o must_v decide_v controversy_n for_o word_n be_v ordain_v to_o open_v the_o meaning_n and_o mind_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v they_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v always_o true_a because_o god_n who_o speak_v it_o be_v 3.33_o true_a and_o 1.2_o can_v lie_v the_o show_n of_o it_o be_v false_a sometime_o and_o deceitful_a as_o 3.4_o man_n be_v who_o judgement_n this_o show_n depend_v of_o and_o that_o may_v seem_v to_o they_o to_o be_v mean_v by_o it_o which_o be_v not_o mean_v by_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o show_n but_o the_o sense_n the_o substance_n not_o the_o semblance_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n that_o you_o must_v prove_v do_v make_v for_o you_o in_o point_n of_o controversy_n if_o you_o will_v prove_v aught_o hart._n why_o do_v you_o grant_v then_o that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n make_v more_o for_o we_o in_o show_n though_o not_o in_o substance_n than_o they_o do_v for_o you_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o you_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v know_v rainoldes_n what_o not_o that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n sometime_o make_v more_o for_o you_o then_o we_o in_o show_n though_o not_o in_o substance_n yes_o true_o m._n hart_n and_o for_o the_o anabaptiste_n too_o that_o 4.32_o christian_n have_v all_o thing_n common_a and_o for_o 1._o pope_n clemens_n too_o that_o wife_n must_v be_v common_a because_o coniuges_fw-la in_o all_o thing_n wife_n be_v employ_v also_o and_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o be_v afraid_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v know_v that_o even_o in_o the_o very_a example_n which_o you_o mention_v as_o make_v for_o you_o most_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v plain_o in_o show_n though_o not_o for_o your_o monster_n of_o transubstantiation_n yet_o for_o your_o real_a presence_n then_o for_o our_o sacramental_a but_o so_o that_o i_o grant_v the_o same_o in_o like_a manner_n of_o other_o sacramental_a and_o
have_v nor_o yet_o be_o i_o ashamed_a of_o that_o kind_n of_o trial_n and_o judgement_n by_o the_o godly_a who_o have_v not_o learned_a tongue_n and_o art_n but_o christ_n only_o and_o i_o comprise_v it_o in_o that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o they_o which_o under_o he_o have_v it_o commit_v to_o they_o even_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n for_o himself_o have_v give_v by_o special_a commission_n two_o sort_n of_o judgement_n to_o his_o church_n the_o one_o private_a the_o other_o public_a private_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o 2.15_o spiritual_a as_o god_n call_v they_o who_o be_v will_v 10.15_o to_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v and_o to_o 4.1_o try_v spirit_n whither_o they_o be_v of_o god_n public_a 15.6_o to_o the_o assembly_n of_o pastor_n and_o elder_n for_o 14.29_o of_o that_o which_o prophet_n teach_v let_v prophet_n judge_v and_o 14.32_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n in_o both_o of_o the_o which_o the_o church_n must_v yet_o remember_v that_o god_n have_v commit_v nothing_o but_o the_o ministry_n of_o give_v judgement_n unto_o she_o the_o soveraintie_n of_o judgement_n do_v rest_n on_o god_n word_n for_o christ_n be_v 23.10_o our_o only_a doctor_n &_o 4.12_o lawgiver_n according_a to_o who_o write_v will_v the_o church_n must_v judge_v and_o so_o division_n to_o return_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n from_o which_o we_o digress_v the_o sense_n i_o give_v of_o they_o will_v i_o prove_v by_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o proof_n of_o the_o sense_n i_o submit_v to_o the_o private_a and_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n contain_v a_o promise_n of_o the_o key_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o occasion_n of_o the_o word_n be_v a_o question_n of_o christ_n ask_v of_o the_o apostle_n answer_v by_o peter_n who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o sense_n which_o i_o gather_v by_o lay_v these_o together_o be_v that_o as_o peter_n answer_v one_o for_o all_o so_o the_o key_n be_v mean_v to_o he_o one_o with_o all_o to_o prove_v the_o former_a point_n that_o peter_n answer_v one_o for_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v most_o plain_a in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n where_o before_o this_o time_n peter_n have_v confess_v in_o their_o common_a name_n 6●_n we_o believe_v and_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n to_o prove_v the_o late_a that_o the_o key_n be_v mean_v to_o he_o one_o with_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o plain_a in_o the_o twenty_o of_o john_n where_o christ_n perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o peter_n do_v say_v to_o he_o with_o the_o rest_n 2d_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v to_o they_o &_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v wherefore_o since_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v by_o christ_n on_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o all_o and_o the_o promise_n be_v perform_v when_o he_o send_v they_o all_o with_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o key_n belong_v no_o more_o to_o peter_n then_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o key_n to_o he_o import_v no_o headship_n of_o he_o over_o they_o hart._n that_o which_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n unto_o peter_n be_v not_o perform_v to_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o give_v not_o they_o the_o key_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o the_o power_n of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n rainoldes_n these_o thing_n differ_v in_o word_n but_o they_o be_v one_o in_o sense_n as_o joseph_n say_v to_o pharaoh_n 41.25_o both_o pharaos_n dream_n be_v one_o for_o as_o god_n to_o teach_v pharaoh_n what_o he_o will_v do_v in_o egypt_n by_o seven_o year_n of_o plenty_n &_o seven_o year_n of_o famine_n do_v use_v two_o sundry_a dream_n of_o kine_n and_o ear_n of_o corn_n the_o sure_a to_o resolve_v he_o of_o his_o purpose_n in_o it_o so_o christ_n to_o teach_v we_o what_o he_o do_v for_o mankind_n in_o ordain_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n 16.19_o use_v two_o similitude_n the_o one_o of_o key_n the_o other_o of_o bind_v &_o lose_v that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o better_a the_o fruit_n &_o force_v of_o it_o touch_v the_o key_n he_o speak_v of_o heaven_n as_o of_o a_o house_n wherinto_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n for_o man_n unless_o the_o door_n be_v open_v now_o we_o all_o adam_n offspring_n be_v shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n as_o adam_n our_o progenitor_n be_v out_o of_o paradise_n through_o our_o offence_n and_o sin_n for_o 21.27_o no_o unclean_a thing_n shall_v enter_v into_o it_o but_o 3.16_o god_n of_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n towards_o we_o have_v give_v we_o his_o son_n his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v eternal_a life_n which_o be_v 1.4_o the_o inheritance_n reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o us._n 10.14_o we_o can_v believe_v unless_o we_o hear_v his_o word_n we_o hear_v not_o his_o word_n unless_o it_o be_v preach_v wherefore_o when_o ●_o god_n the_o father_n send_v his_o son_n christ_n and_o 24.47_o christ_n send_v his_o apostle_n as_o his_o father_n send_v he_o to_o preach_v his_o word_n to_o man_n that_o they_o who_o repent_v and_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o the_o faithless_a &_o unrepentant_a shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v then_o he_o give_v authority_n as_o it_o be_v to_o open_a heaven_n to_o the_o faithful_a and_o to_o shut_v it_o against_o the_o wicked_a which_o office_n to_o shut_v and_o open_a because_o in_o man_n house_n it_o be_v exercise_v by_o key_n and_o 18.18_o the_o steward_n of_o the_o house_n be_v say_v 22.22_o to_o have_v the_o key_n of_o it_o to_o open_v it_o and_o to_o shut_v it_o therefore_o christ_n the_o principal_a steward_n of_o god_n house_n be_v say_v 3.7_o to_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n and_o he_o give_v his_o apostle_n the_o key_n as_o you_o will_v say_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n when_o he_o make_v they_o his_o 4.1_o steward_n to_o shut_v out_o to_o let_v in_o the_o other_o similitude_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v to_o like_a effect_n for_o 5.12_o we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o sin_n 6.23_o and_o therefore_o of_o death_n now_o sin_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o same_o to_o the_o soul_n that_o 5.22_o cord_n to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o endless_a pain_n of_o death_n that_o be_v the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v like_a to_o 4_o chain_n wherewith_o the_o wicked_a be_v bind_v in_o hell_n as_o 3.19_o in_o a_o prison_n from_o these_o cord_n of_o sin_n and_o chain_n of_o death_n eternal_a man_n be_v loose_v by_o christ_n when_o their_o sin_n be_v remit_v their_o sin_n be_v remit_v if_o they_o believe_v in_o he_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o their_o sin_n be_v retain_v who_o sin_n be_v retain_v they_o do_v continue_v bind_v for_o 3.18_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v he_o that_o beléeve_v shall_v be_v save_v none_o shall_v be_v condemn_v but_o they_o who_o sin_n be_v retain_v to_o bind_v they_o with_o the_o chain_n of_o darkness_n none_o save_v but_o they_o who_o sin_n be_v remit_v and_o the_o cord_n unloose_a by_o which_o they_o be_v hold_v uuherefore_o since_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o this_o end_n 2.16_o a_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o life_n unto_o beléever_n unto_o the_o unbeléever_n a_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o death_n as_o we_o read_v of_o christ_n that_o 61.1_o the_o lord_n send_v he_o to_o preach_v deliverance_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o open_v of_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v in_o like_a sort_n his_o minister_n who_o he_o send_v to_o preach_v it_o be_v say_v 18.18_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v 20.23_o to_o retain_v and_o remit_v sin_n so_o that_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o speech_n import_v the_o same_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o key_n for_o to_o bind_v and_o to_o retain_v sin_n be_v to_o shut_v to_o loose_v and_o to_o remit_v sin_n be_v to_o open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n your_o own_o church_n do_v take_v the_o key_n in_o this_o meaning_n even_o p●●niten●_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o whereas_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v that_o be_v of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n as_o yourselves_o expound_v it_o this_o power_n you_o call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o
and_o very_o strong_o prove_v rainoldes_n this_o long_a and_o smooth_a tale_n which_o you_o have_v tell_v out_o of_o your_o doctor_n be_v like_a to_o that_o nightingale_n to_o which_o lacon_n a_o lacedaemonian_a when_o he_o have_v pluck_v her_o feather_n off_o and_o see_v a_o little_a caraine_n leave_v say_v thou_o be_v a_o voice_n nought_o else_o pluck_v off_o the_o feather_n of_o your_o tale_n the_o body_n be_v a_o poor_a carcase_n and_o have_v no_o substance_n in_o it_o howbeit_o the_o name_n of_o the_o two_o court_n the_o outward_a court_n the_o inward_a court_n with_o other_o tune_n of_o like_a music_n be_v very_o sweet_a melody_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o they_o who_o heart_n be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o simple_a man_n who_o have_v be_v only_o conversant_a in_o 34.2_o the_o court_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o sound_v to_o they_o like_o strange_a language_n and_o seem_v to_o contain_v more_o profound_a mystery_n than_o we_o can_v reach_v the_o depth_n off_o but_o to_o open_v your_o answer_n that_o it_o may_v be_v see_v what_o be_v unsound_a in_o it_o this_o be_v the_o point_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o controversy_n i_o say_v that_o the_o power_n promise_v to_o peter_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o sixtéenth_n of_o matthew_n be_v perform_v and_o give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o commission_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o twenty_o of_o john_n you_o with_o stapleton_n deny_v it_o why_o because_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n do_v signify_v all_o kind_n of_o power_n whereof_o a_o part_n only_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v in_o either_o court_n and_o how_o prove_v you_o this_o forsooth_o because_o by_o these_o word_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n christ_n do_v clavium_fw-la not_o expound_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o key_n as_o some_o man_n say_v you_o have_v thoughtthat_o he_o do_v then_o some_o man_n have_v think_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v all_o one_o the_o late_a add_v by_o christ_n to_o expound_v the_o former_a in_o deed_n i_o think_v so_o and_o i_o perceive_v by_o you_o that_o i_o think_v not_o so_o alone_o some_o other_o man_n have_v think_v it_o too_o but_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o as_o some_o man_n have_v think_v yet_o you_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o the_o name_n of_o these_o some_o man_n may_v we_o know_v i_o pray_v what_o these_o some_o man_n be_v hart._n what_o matter_n be_v it_o who_o they_o be_v since_o we_o be_v not_o of_o their_o mind_n rainoldes_n yes_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n for_o if_o i_o know_v they_o it_o may_v be_v i_o will_v talk_v with_o they_o hart._n to_o confirm_v you_o in_o your_o error_n but_o learned_a man_n do_v vary_v in_o expound_v of_o scripture_n some_o hit_v the_o mark_n some_o miss_n it_o and_o d._n stapleton_n read_v many_o of_o all_o ●ortes_n may_v fall_v on_o some_o expound_v it_o amiss_o as_o you_o do_v who_o he_o for_o modesty_n will_v not_o name_v where_o he_o reprove_v their_o opinion_n rainoldes_n this_o modesty_n i_o like_v not_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o dare_v not_o name_v they_o lest_o we_o shall_v know_v they_o and_o be_v the_o more_o strengthen_v by_o they_o in_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o confound_a of_o your_o error_n for_o these_o some_o man_n who_o he_o so_o light_o trip_v over_o be_v but_o all_o the_o father_n who_o have_v with_o one_o consent_n expound_v christ_n promise_n of_o the_o key_n as_o we_o do_v now_o the_o exposition_n which_o the_o father_n make_v be_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n the_o church_n exposition_n which_o have_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o while_o he_o be_v launch_v out_o into_o the_o deep_a to_o fetch_v in_o a_o prize_n for_o peter_n of_o rome_n supremacy_n he_o make_v shipwreck_n in_o the_o haven_n hart._n how_o know_v you_o that_o the_o father_n all_o have_v so_o expound_v it_o you_o have_v not_o read_v they_o all_o have_v you_o rainoldes_n no_o true_o neither_o ever_o be_o likely_a to_o do_v it_o but_o i_o have_v read_v he_o that_o have_v read_v they_o all_o i_o trow_v and_o he_o be_v a_o man_n worthy_a with_o you_o of_o credit_n do_v witness_n that_o i_o say_v true_a hart._n who_o be_v that_o rainoldes_n even_o father_n robert_n the_o public_a reader_n and_o professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o rome_n who_o it_o when_o he_o discourse_v of_o christ_n word_n to_o peter_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n say_v that_o all_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v therein_o promise_v not_o restrain_v to_o part_n but_o enlarge_v to_o what_o soever_o yea_o that_o christ_n likewise_o promise_v the_o same_o power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o 18.18_o he_o speak_v in_o like_a word_n whatsoever_o you_o bound_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n &_o what_o soever_o you_o lose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n for_o albeit_o origen_n more_o subtle_o then_o literal_o do_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o promise_n because_o in_o the_o one_o the_o word_n 18.18_o heaven_n be_v use_v in_o the_o other_o 16.19_o heaven_n yet_o the_o common_a exposition_n of_o s._n jerom_n s._n hilary_n s._n anselme_n and_o other_o upon_o this_o place_n yea_o of_o s._n austin_n himself_o in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o john_n be_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n by_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n do_v bind_v or_o loose_v sinner_n and_o although_o it_o seem_v that_o here_o be_v chief_o mean_v the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n whereby_o sinner_n be_v excommunicate_a yet_o the_o say_a father_n do_v understand_v it_o of_o both_o the_o power_n not_o only_o of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o order_n too_o and_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v it_o seem_v by_o the_o text_n for_o it_o be_v say_v as_o general_o to_o the_o apostle_n what_o thing_n soever_o you_o shall_v bind_v as_o it_o be_v to_o peter_n what_o thing_n soever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v hart._n perhaps_o father_n robert_n do_v bring_v in_o these_o thing_n by_o way_n of_o a_o objection_n and_o frame_v thereunto_o a_o answer_n and_o so_o resolve_v to_o the_o contrary_n rainoldes_n no._n but_o he_o bring_v your_o opinion_n in_o deed_n by_o way_n of_o a_o objection_n and_o frame_v thereunto_o a_o answer_n and_o so_o resolve_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o thus_o he_o go_v forward_o what_o be_v that_o give_v then_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o peter_n caietan_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n say_v that_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v not_o all_o one_o for_o that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v be_v less_o than_o to_o open_v and_o shut_v but_o this_o doctrine_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o subtle_a than_o true_a for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unheard_a of_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n any_o other_o key_n than_o the_o key_n of_o order_n and_o of_o jurisdiction_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v and_o loose_v be_v plain_a that_o first_o a_o certain_a power_n and_o authority_n be_v promise_v afterward_o the_o function_n of_o it_o be_v declare_v now_o the_o function_n of_o these_o key_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o word_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v not_o by_o the_o word_n to_o shut_v and_o open_v that_o we_o may_v understand_v they_o be_v metaphorical_a and_o borrow_a kind_n of_o speech_n neither_o heaven_n be_v open_v proper_o but_o it_o be_v say_v that_o heaven_n be_v open_v then_o with_o these_o key_n when_o man_n be_v loose_v and_o dispatch_v of_o the_o difficulty_n and_o infirmity_n which_o shut_v they_o out_o of_o heaven_n and_o so_o forth_o thus_o say_v your_o chief_a reader_n and_o jesuit_n robert_n bellarmin_n who_o judgement_n by_o your_o leave_n i_o far_o esteem_v in_o this_o point_n above_o d._n stapletons_n as_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n hart._n you_o may_v esteem_v it_o as_o you_o li●t_v but_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o stand_v to_o bellarmine_n judgement_n rainoldes_n but_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o that_o interpretabor_fw-la upon_o your_o oath_n as_o i_o take_v it_o with_o the_o which_o oath_n i_o know_v not_o how_o d._n stapleton_n dispense_v unless_o the_o pope_n expound_v it_o that_o you_o must_v follow_v they_o so_o far_o as_o
neither_o scripture_n nor_o father_n nor_o schoolman_n nor_o jesuite_n can_v make_v he_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o own_o oversight_n let_v he_o hear_v a_o witness_n who_o can_v do_v more_o with_o he_o against_o who_o there_o lie_v no_o exception_n for_o he_o unless_o it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o law_n testibus_fw-la they_o who_o waver_v against_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o own_o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v this_o witness_n be_v himself_o who_o remember_v not_o the_o proverb_n that_o a_o liar_n must_v be_v mindful_a 7._o do_v afterward_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v with_o full_a power_n to_o begin_v the_o church_n by_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o and_o that_o they_o all_o be_v therein_o equal_a unto_o peter_n hart._n so_o he_o say_v that_o full_a power_n be_v give_v they_o by_o those_o word_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o but_o that_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v contain_v a_o part_n thereof_o only_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o remit_v as_o again_o he_o mention_v in_o that_o very_a place_n now_o these_o two_o saying_n agree_v well_o together_o that_o it_o be_v give_v by_o the_o one_o &_o by_o the_o other_o it_o be_v not_o wherefore_o yourself_o offend_v in_o that_o you_o touch_v he_o when_o you_o do_v touch_v he_o as_o a_o liar_n a_o common_a fault_n with_o protestant_n in_o deal_v against_o we_o which_o argue_v your_o church_n of_o what_o brood_n it_o be_v 8.44_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n thereof_o rainoldes_n if_o any_o man_n of_o our_o profession_n be_v stain_v with_o this_o filth_n we_o wish_v he_o and_o exhort_v he_o to_o cleanse_v himself_o of_o it_o lest_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v through_o his_o default_n blaspheme_v among_o the_o gentile_n but_o you_o do_v we_o injury_n to_o condemn_v our_o church_n for_o the_o offence_n of_o some_o in_o it_o for_o 6_o all_o they_o be_v not_o israel_n which_o be_v of_o israel_n and_o jacobs_n son_n ●●_o reuben_n do_v commit_v incest_n 34.23_o simeon_n and_o levi_n murder_n yet_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o myself_o have_v do_v your_o doctor_n any_o wrong_n in_o touch_v he_o as_o a_o liar_n it_o be_v a_o error_n not_o a_o crime_n not_o of_o wilfulness_n but_o oversight_n and_o such_o a_o oversight_n for_o which_o he_o rather_o owe_v thanks_n to_o i_o who_o touch_v he_o then_o to_o you_o who_o clear_v he_o for_o i_o who_o do_v touch_v he_o touch_v he_o with_o a_o rod_n but_o you_o who_o do_v clear_v he_o whip_v he_o with_o scorpion_n hart._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o that_o rainoldes_n you_o charge_v he_o with_o a_o capital_a crime_n as_o i_o may_v term_v it_o to_o clear_v he_o of_o a_o lesser_a he_o follow_v not_o the_o devil_n in_o lie_v you_o say_v but_o you_o grant_v he_o follow_v he_o in_o that_o be_v worse_o even_o in_o the_o suppress_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o seduce_v the_o reader_n for_o as_o the_o devi●●_n tempt_v christ_n to_o cast_v himself_o down_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n allege_v 4.6_o it_o be_v write_v he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o omit_v 11_o that_o they_o shall_v keep_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n because_o that_o make_v against_o he_o the_o way_n to_o which_o he_o tempt_v be_v none_o of_o christ_n way_n in_o like_a sort_n the_o doctor_n tempt_v we_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o allege_v 2d_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o remit_v as_o give_v less_o to_o the_o apostle_n than_o be_v promise_v to_o peter_n he_o omit_v ●1_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o whereby_o they_o all_o have_v full_a power_n the_o same_o that_o peter_n have_v neither_o yet_o content_v himself_o with_o this_o treachery_n he_o proceed_v far_a and_o whereas_o 1●_n the_o scripture_n say_v of_o eliakim_n that_o he_o be_v the_o steward_n of_o the_o king_n house_n the_o doctor_n affirm_v he_o be_v 1●_n the_o high_a priest_n that_o see_v the_o key_n of_o david_n house_n be_v give_v he_o and_o his_o key_n therein_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n do_v promise_v key_n to_o peter_n the_o simple_a reader_n may_v conceive_v by_o this_o allusion_n that_o as_o eliakim_n be_v the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o peter_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o new_a the_o one_o as_o a_o figure_n the_o other_o as_o lieutenant_z of_o christ_n the_o true_a high_a priest_n hart._n what_o move_v d._n stapleton_n to_o say_v that_o eliakim_n be_v high_a priest_n i_o know_v not_o i_o do_v not_o think_v he_o will_v have_v say_v it_o unless_o he_o have_v have_v good_a reason_n to_o avouch_v it_o and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o if_o he_o know_v that_o and_o other_o thing_n which_o you_o find_v fault_n with_o what_o soever_o he_o have_v write_v he_o will_v make_v it_o good_a rainoldes_n i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o hart_n he_o will_v for_o than_o he_o shall_v repent_v and_o amend_v his_o error_n the_o only_a way_n to_o make_v that_o good_a which_o be_v evil_a but_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n that_o christ_n give_v the_o key_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o peter_n for_o see_v by_o the_o key_n be_v signify_v the_o full_a power_n and_o the_o full_a power_n be_v give_v to_o they_o all_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o they_o all_o how_o much_o the_o more_o idle_a be_v that_o fansifull_a tale_n which_o you_o tell_v out_o of_o he_o that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o remit_v &_o retain_v sin_n imply_v a_o part_n only_o or_o as_o he_o term_v it_o be_v only_o clavium_fw-la partial_a not_o total_a and_o lesser_o not_o the_o chief_a action_n of_o the_o key_n but_o to_o open_v and_o shut_v wherein_o be_v employ_v the_o power_n correspondent_a full_o and_o even_o to_o the_o key_n be_v the_o whole_a power_n even_o a_o power_n most_o ample_a potestas_fw-la and_o so_o the_o partial_a lesser_a action_n of_o the_o key_n be_v commit_v by_o christ_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n fuerint_fw-la whereas_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n alone_o whereof_o the_o conclusion_n be_v so_o clear_o false_a that_o himself_o as_o though_o he_o have_v swallow_a a_o hot_a morsel_n which_o he_o must_v needs_o ungorge_v be_v fain_o to_o cast_v it_o up_o straightwaie_o and_o say_v the_o contrary_n for_o in_o that_o he_o add_v that_o the_o full_a power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v alios_fw-la to_o peter_n alone_o principal_o before_o and_o above_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o grant_v by_o consequent_a that_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o give_v to_o they_o also_o hart._n yet_o principal_o to_o he_o alone_o but_o though_o all_o of_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n even_o the_o full_a power_n the_o same_o that_o he_o receive_v which_o nevertheless_o i_o grant_v not_o but_o suppose_v they_o have_v yet_o this_o do_v confirm_v that_o he_o be_v their_o supreme_a head_n in_o some_o respect_n rainoldes_n how_o so_o because_o no_o great_a power_n be_v give_v he_o than_o be_v give_v they_o hart._n no_o but_o because_o 15._o the_o power_n which_o be_v give_v they_o be_v give_v they_o by_o he_o for_o pauli_n so_o as_o leo_n the_o great_a write_v wise_o conse●tur_fw-la the_o strength_n which_o be_v give_v to_o peter_n by_o christ_n be_v bestow_v on_o the_o apostle_n by_o peter_n rainoldes_n this_o leo_n be_v too_o great_a a_o friend_n of_o peter_n state_n as_o 2._o i_o have_v declare_v wherefore_o how_o great_a soever_o he_o be_v and_o write_v wise_o yet_o must_v his_o writing_n give_v place_n to_o the_o word_n of_o a_o great_a leo_n i_o mean_v of_o 5.5_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n for_o he_o teach_v we_o not_o that_o the_o apostle_n receve_v their_o power_n by_o peter_n but_o 28.18_o that_o peter_n and_o they_o receive_v it_o all_o together_o immediate_o of_o christ._n yea_o paul_n 9.15_o though_o he_o be_v choose_v after_o christ_n ascension_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n yet_o be_v he_o 1.1_o a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n the_o father_n which_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a hart._n that_o be_v true_a which_o you_o say_v but_o you_o mistake_v my_o meaning_n for_o you_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a power_n which_o i_o grant_v they_o receive_v immediate_o of_o christ._n but_o 7._o they_o have_v a_o other_o power_n beside_o that_o to_o wit_n a_o bishoply_n or_o pastoral_a power_n wherein_o since_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o peter_n though_o equal_a in_o the_o apostolic_a it_o may_v be_v they_o receive_v though_o not_o the_o apostolic_a yet_o the_o bishoply_n power_n of_o he_o
rainoldes_n some_o such_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o your_o man_n will_v say_v but_o to_o confess_v my_o own_o ignorance_n i_o do_v not_o understand_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o which_o i_o shall_v perhaps_o be_v ashamed_a off_o if_o you_o who_o handle_v it_o yourselves_o do_v understand_v it_o or_o give_v we_o sense_n and_o reason_n of_o it_o for_o if_o all_o the_o power_n which_o bishop_n have_v as_o bishop_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o the_o apostle_n as_o apostle_n have_v all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n commit_v unto_o they_o by_o christ_n both_o the_o which_o thing_n the_o scripture_n prove_v &_o you_o disprove_v not_o then_o be_v there_o no_o power_n which_o they_o may_v receive_v of_o peter_n as_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v any_o of_o he_o nor_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o therein_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o papacy_n but_o lay_v on_o such_o sand_n that_o the_o master_n builder_n who_o travail_n most_o in_o lay_v it_o do_v reel_v like_o drunken_a man_n about_o it_o too_o and_o fro_o and_o strike_v with_o a_o blindness_n as_o 19.11_o the_o sodomite_n at_o lot_n doo●e_n they_o be_v weary_v in_o seek_v of_o it_o cardinal_n 2._o turrecremata_fw-la the_o chief_a autour_fw-fr of_o the_o fancy_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o 34._o christ_n bring_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o apostle_n to_o bishoply_n dignity_n by_o peter_n even_o as_o he_o lead_v his_o people_n through_o the_o wilderness_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n &_o aaron_n 3●_n for_o himself_o make_v peter_n only_o a_o bishop_n immediate_o and_o peter_n prefer_v the_o rest_n first_o john_n next_o james_n than_o other_o as_o the_o cardinal_n guess_v by_o probability_n of_o dream_n some_o in_o thecanon_n law_n some_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n ●1_n turrian_n the_o jesuit_n a_o man_n with_o who_o such_o dream_n common_o be_v oracle_n though_o he_o allow_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o think_v this_o manner_n of_o father_v he_o to_o be_v absurd_a he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v all_o ordain_v bishop_n 2._o by_o the_o lay_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o fiery_a tongue_n upon_o they_o when_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o s._n jerom_n s._n denys_n and_o other_o father_n of_o who_o opinion_n it_o ensue_v that_o grant_v the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n as_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n in_o which_o their_o charge_n be_v call_v 1.20_o a_o bishoply_n charge_n they_o be_v yet_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n immediate_o as_o well_o as_o peter_n be_v and_o not_o of_o god_n by_o peter_n d._n stapleton_n uncertain_a how_o to_o bear_v himself_o between_o these_o two_o opinion_n the_o late_a being_n true_a the_o former_a safe_o for_o the_o pope_n he_o falter_v in_o his_o speech_n as_o though_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n he_o have_v a_o wolf_n by_o the_o ear_n who_o neither_o he_o dare_v let_v go_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n nor_o hold_v for_o fear_v of_o danger_n for_o of_o the_o one_o side_n he_o be_v loath_a to_o grant_v the_o truth_n lest_o it_o shall_v prejudice_n the_o title_n of_o the_o pope_n yet_o loath_a of_o the_o other_o side_n to_o deny_v it_o also_o because_o 21.26_o he_o fear_v the_o people_n 1._o first_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o the_o key_n which_o signify_v the_o full_a power_n of_o government_n ecclesiastical_a be_v give_v to_o peter_n only_o then_o he_o confess_v 7._o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v by_o christ_n with_o full_a power_n yea_o with_o power_n most_o full_a and_o equal_a unto_o peter_n power_n from_o hence_o he_o turn_v back_o and_o take_v up_o his_o old_a song_n 8._o that_o christ_n give_v all_o power_n ecclesiastical_a to_o peter_n only_o and_o so_o by_o he_o to_o other_o which_o string_n because_o it_o give_v a_o very_a sweet_a sound_n 15._o he_o harp_v on_o it_o often_o afterward_o either_o doubt_v the_o conscience_n of_o weak_a catholic_n or_o the_o evil_a tongue_n of_o caluinist_n who_o favour_n the_o apostle_n and_o can_v hear_v they_o so_o debase_v he_o say_v 15._o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v immediate_o of_o god_n with_o full_a power_n unto_o all_o nation_n yet_o by_o and_o by_o fall_v again_o unto_o his_o giddiness_n through_o some_o pang_n belike_o of_o pope_n his_o holiness_n displeasure_n which_o may_v be_v stir_v by_o such_o speech_n he_o pronounce_v 15._o that_o the_o spring_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n be_v derive_v from_o peter_n alone_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o thus_o he_o go_v on_o through_o the_o whole_a discourse_n both_o in_o this_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n enterfeir_a as_o it_o be_v at_o every_o other_o pace_n and_o hew_a hoof_n against_o hoof_n but_o so_o will_v the_o lord_n confound_v the_o tongue_n of_o they_o who_o do_v build_v up_o babylon_n yet_o here_o for_o these_o cut_n wherewith_o he_o gash_v himself_o he_o think_v that_o they_o may_v be_v heal_v with_o a_o distinction_n take_v up_o in_o cardinal_n turrecrematas_fw-la shop_n of_o a_o twofold_a power_n the_o one_o apostolic_a the_o other_o bishoply_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o have_v be_v inferior_a to_o peter_n in_o the_o bishoply_n though_o equal_a in_o the_o apostolic_a and_o all_o to_o have_v receive_v the_o apostolic_a power_n immediate_o of_o christ_n the_o rest_n as_o namely_o james_n their_o bishoply_n power_n of_o peter_n but_o two_o learned_a friar_n sixtus_n senensis_n and_o franciscus_n victoria_n man_n of_o better_a read_n and_o judgement_n then_o either_o he_o or_o turrecremata_fw-la have_v cast_v off_o this_o quirk_n as_o a_o rot_a drug_n before_o stapleton_n take_v it_o up_o ecclesiae_fw-la victoria_n by_o show_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v all_o their_o power_n immediate_o of_o christ._n 171._o sixtus_n by_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o father_n that_o in_o the_o power_n of_o apostleship_n and_o order_n so_o he_o call_v those_o two_o power_n paul_n be_v equal_a to_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n to_o they_o both_o which_o case_n he_o think_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o despair_v of_o help_n for_o the_o papacy_n by_o peter_n either_o bishoply_n power_n or_o apostolic_a he_o add_v thereunto_o a_o three_o kind_n of_o power_n even_o the_o power_n of_o kingdom_n therein_o to_o set_v peter_n over_o the_o apostle_n that_o so_o the_o pope_n too_o may_v reign_v over_o bishop_n it_o must_v be_v know_v say_v he_o that_o peter_n have_v a_o threefold_a power_n one_o of_o the_o apostolatus_fw-la apostleship_n a_o other_o of_o ordinis_fw-la order_n and_o the_o three_o of_o regni_fw-la kingdom_n touch_v the_o apostleship_n that_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o teach_v and_o care_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n paul_n as_o it_o be_v right_o note_v by_o galat._n jerom_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o peter_n because_o paul_n be_v choose_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o peter_n but_o by_o god_n even_o as_o peter_n be_v touch_v the_o power_n which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n euagr_n jerom_n have_v say_v well_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o key_n equal_o yea_o that_o they_o all_o as_o bishop_n be_v equal_a in_o degree_n of_o priesthood_n &_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o that_o degree_n but_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o kingdom_n &_o that_o principal_a authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o teacher_n thereof_o have_v luciferian_n jerom_n say_v best_a that_o peter_n be_v choose_v among_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o make_v the_o head_n of_o all_o that_o by_o his_o supreme_a authority_n &_o eminent_a power_n above_o the_o rest_n the_o contention_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v take_v up_o and_o all_o occasion_n of_o schism_n remove_v now_o if_o you_o will_v use_v this_o aid_n of_o kingly_a power_n to_o fortify_v the_o pope_n with_o we_o will_v try_v the_o strength_n thereof_o ●_o when_o you_o bring_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n for_o the_o bishoply_n power_n which_o peter_n be_v imagine_v to_o have_v bestow_v on_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o pope_n will_v on_o bishop_n it_o be_v but_o a_o cardinal_n fetch_v to_o serve_v the_o turn_n of_o his_o lord_n the_o pope_n the_o learn_a of_o your_o jesuite_n and_o friar_n dare_v not_o take_v it_o your_o doctor_n fain_o will_v have_v it_o but_o touch_v it_o so_o nice_o as_o though_o he_o be_v afraid_a of_o it_o if_o you_o will_v stand_v unto_o it_o and_o hold_v it_o with_o the_o cardinal_n let_v we_o see_v your_o warrant_n where_o do_v the_o apostle_n receive_v it_o of_o peter_n at_o what_o time_n in_o what_o manner_n who_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o it_o hart._n they_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o the_o order_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v rainoldes_n be_v that_o the_o order_n why_o do_v
as_o plato_n do_v excel_v among_o the_o philosopher_n for_o wit_n and_o gift_n of_o wit_n in_o the_o which_o conclusion_n that_o you_o may_v perceive_v what_o i_o geve_v to_o peter_n and_o refuse_v it_o if_o you_o mislike_v it_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o grace_n i_o mean_v all_o the_o blessing_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n do_v honour_v he_o by_o excel_v in_o they_o i_o mean_v that_o he_o do_v pass_v not_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o they_o all_o but_o every_o one_o in_o some_o or_o other_o for_o john_n the_o disciple_n who_o the_o lord_n love_v who_o write_v the_o gospel_n so_o divine_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n who_o see_v by_o revelation_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o write_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n john_n excel_v peter_n in_o many_o gift_n of_o grace_n as_o 1._o jerom_n declare_v and_o paul_n excel_v he_o far_o even_o in_o the_o chief_a gift_n in_o so_o much_o that_o 1._o austin_n who_o geve_v gratia_fw-la excellent_a grace_n to_o peter_n 130._o do_v geve_v gratiae_fw-la most_o excellent_a grace_n to_o paul_n and_o say_v that_o he_o receive_v more_o grace_n and_o labour_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v therefore_o call_v 3._o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o excellency_n but_o peter_n of_o the_o other_o side_n excel_v paul_n in_o primacy_n that_o he_o be_v choose_v first_o and_o john_n in_o age_n that_o he_o be_v elder_a in_o respect_n whereof_o he_o be_v prefer_v before_o he_o senior_a by_o jeroms_n opinion_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o jerom_n and_o other_o father_n mean_v by_o peter_n principality_n if_o you_o will_v geve_v they_o leave_v to_o be_v their_o own_o interpreter_n they_o do_v not_o mean_a to_o call_v he_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o pope_n desire_v to_o be_v prince_n of_o bishop_n hart_n they_o do_v mean_a to_o call_v he_o the_o mouth_n and_o the_o top_n the_o high_a the_o precedent_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o these_o as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v their_o own_o word_n by_o which_o a_o preeminence_n in_o government_n be_v prove_v and_o not_o in_o grace_n only_o rainoldes_n these_o in_o deed_n come_v near_o to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n because_o they_o touch_v government_n at_o the_o least_o some_o of_o they_o for_o some_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o high_a and_o so_o the_o top_n it_o may_v be_v too_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v mean_v rather_o of_o preeminence_n in_o grace_n then_o in_o government_n but_o if_o you_o will_v refer_v they_o unto_o both_o it_o skill_v not_o for_o they_o can_v betoken_v no_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v signify_v although_o a_o preeminence_n in_o government_n such_o as_o it_o be_v yet_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o your_o supremacy_n 14._o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o which_o be_v agree_v betwixt_o we_o 1._o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o practice_n of_o peter_n authority_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o when_o i_o grant_v he_o to_o be_v as_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o parliament_n in_o england_n or_o the_o precedent_n of_o a_o court_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n and_o show_v the_o great_a difference_n out_o of_o 2._o a_o lawyer_n of_o your_o own_o between_o this_o preeminence_n and_o that_o supremacy_n which_o you_o claim_v you_o reject_v the_o lawyer_n as_o either_o ignorant_a or_o unfaithful_a and_o refuse_v this_o préeminence_n as_o not_o import_v that_o supremacy_n because_o it_o have_v not_o sovereign_a power_n nay_o in_o power_n be_v under_o the_o body_n of_o the_o assembly_n above_o which_o it_o be_v in_o a_o prerogative_n of_o honour_n yet_o this_o preeminence_n be_v all_o that_o be_v give_v to_o peter_n by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o mouth_n the_o head_n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o by_o those_o title_n your_o papal_a supremacy_n be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o hart._n it_o may_v by_o your_o similitude_n be_v probable_o think_v that_o some_z of_o the_o rest_n may_v note_v such_o a_o preeminence_n in_o government_n as_o you_o speak_v of_o without_o a_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n but_o the_o title_n of_o head_n have_v great_a strength_n in_o it_o for_o the_o speaker_n be_v not_o call_v with_o we_o in_o england_n the_o head_n of_o the_o parliament_n that_o title_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o princ_n e_o alone_z rainoldes_n but_o dicitur_fw-la the_o precedent_n of_o a_o court_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n be_v call_v head_n of_o the_o court_n and_o austin_n or_o rather_o he_o who_o you_o allege_v in_o the_o name_n of_o austin_n expound_v caput_fw-la head_n by_o praepositus_fw-la precedent_n and_o the_o name_n of_o head_n as_o 2._o i_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v use_v to_o note_v a_o preeminence_n of_o other_o thing_n &_o not_o of_o power_n much_o less_o of_o princely_a power_n only_o then_o what_o reason_n be_v there_o 75._o but_o jerom_n in_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v appoint_v head_n may_v signify_v the_o preeminence_n not_o of_o a_o prince_n but_o of_o a_o speaker_n we_o geve_v not_o in_o england_n the_o name_n of_o head_n unto_o the_o speaker_n true_a neither_o geve_v we_o the_o name_n of_o speaker_n to_o the_o prince_n but_o peter_n have_v they_o both_o for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o mouth_n and_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o one_o debase_v he_o not_o to_o the_o meanness_n of_o a_o speaker_n function_n why_o shall_v the_o other_o advance_v he_o to_o the_o highness_n of_o a_o prince_n soveraintie_n hart._n s._n jeroms_n 3._o reason_n show_v that_o he_o rather_o mean_v a_o soveraintie_n as_o of_o a_o prince_n for_o he_o ●aith_o that_o peter_n be_v choose_v one_o among_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o how_o can_v occasion_n of_o schism_n be_v take_v away_o unless_o that_o one_o have_v sovereign_a power_n to_o govern_v all_o rainoldes_n why_o do_v you_o not_o think_v that_o france_n appoint_v precedent_n in_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n for_o the_o better_a order_n of_o they_o in_o their_o do_n that_o occasion_n of_o strife_n may_v be_v take_v away_o what_o in_o free_a state_n which_o be_v rule_v in_o common_a not_o 〈◊〉_d by_o one_o prince_n but_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o best_a man_n or_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o whole_a people_n do_v not_o their_o story_n show_v that_o one_o have_v a_o preeminence_n as_o 20._o the_o consul_n at_o rome_n androtion_n the_o provost_n at_o athens_n though_o the_o soveraintie_n be_v in_o many_o who_o have_v like_o authority_n and_o power_n among_o themselves_o and_o do_v they_o not_o appoint_v this_o one_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o their_o company_n that_o occasion_n of_o strife_n may_v be_v take_v away_o so_o fare_v it_o with_o peter_n among_o the_o apostle_n in_o govern_v the_o church_n who_o state_n if_o we_o compare_v with_o the_o state_n of_o common_a wealth_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v a_o aristocratie_n not_o a_o monarchy_n as_o the_o philosopher_n term_v it_o not_o have_v peter_n as_o a_o prince_n but_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o best_a man_n to_o govern_v it_o in_o common_a yet_o as_o in_o all_o assembly_n wherein_o many_o meet_a about_o affair_n of_o government_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v one_o for_o order_n sake_n and_o peace_n to_o begin_v to_o end_v to_o moderate_v the_o action_n so_o be_v that_o preeminence_n give_v to_o peter_n among_o the_o apostle_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v peaceable_o and_o orderly_o and_o this_o to_o be_v the_o headship_n which_o s._n jerom_o mean_v himself_o 2._o in_o that_o very_a place_n in_o which_o he_o touch_v it_o do_v show_v manifest_o for_o have_v set_v down_o his_o adversary_n objection_n but_o thou_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n he_o answer_v thereto_o although_o the_o same_o be_v do_v in_o another_o place_n apostolos_fw-la on_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o accipiant_fw-la they_o all_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v on_o they_o aequo_fw-la equal_o yet_o therefore_o be_v one_o choose_v among_o the_o twelve_o that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o of_o the_o which_o sentence_n the_o former_a branch_n show_v that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o head_n use_v in_o the_o late_a he_o can_v not_o mean_v that_o peter_n have_v a_o sovereign_a power_n over_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o peter_n power_n be_v comprise_v in_o the_o key_n that_o christ_n do_v promise_v he_o and_o in_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o he_o but_o all_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o key_n by_o jeroms_n judgement_n and_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o they_o
you_o complain_v i_o know_v you_o may_v have_v more_o book_n if_o you_o will_v have_v such_o as_o be_v best_a for_o you_o to_o read_v but_o you_o will_v have_v such_o as_o may_v nourish_v your_o humour_n from_o read_v of_o the_o which_o they_o who_o restrain_v you_o be_v your_o friend_n if_o a_o man_n do_v surfeit_v of_o variety_n of_o dish_n the_o physician_n do_v well_o to_o diet_n he_o with_o one_o wholesome_a kind_n of_o meat_n perhaps_o it_o be_v better_o for_o some_o of_o we_o who_o read_v all_o sort_n that_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o that_o alone_a &_o suffer_v part_n of_o your_o restraint_n we_o be_v trouble_v about_o many_o thing_n but_o one_o thing_n be_v needful_a many_o please_v the_o fancy_n better_o but_o one_o do_v profit_n more_o the_o mind_n he_o be_v a_o wise_a preacher_n who_o say_v 12._o the_o read_n of_o many_o book_n be_v a_o weariness_n unto_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o exhort_v man_n to_o take_v instruction_n by_o 11._o the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o the_o wise_a which_o be_v give_v by_o one_o pastor_n even_o by_o jesus_n christ_n 12._o who_o spirit_n do_v speak_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o teach_v his_o church_n the_o truth_n by_o they_o howbeit_o for_o as_o much_o as_o 11._o god_n have_v give_v gift_n to_o man_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n who_o labour_n may_v help_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o that_o one_o pastor_n we_o do_v receive_v thankful_o the_o monument_n of_o their_o labour_n leave_v in_o write_v to_o the_o church_n which_o they_o be_v set_v to_o build_v either_o several_a as_o the_o doctor_n or_o assemble_v as_o the_o counsel_n &_o we_o do_v glad_o read_v they_o as_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o so_o that_o we_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o that_o one_o pastor_n for_o ●4_n god_n do_v give_v he_o the_o spirit_n not_o by_o measure_n the_o rest_n ●_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n through_o he_o wherefore_o if_o to_o supply_v your_o whatsoever_o want_n you_o will_v have_v the_o book_n of_o doctor_n and_o counsel_n to_o use_v they_o as_o help_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o book_n of_o christ_n your_o want_n shall_v be_v supply_v you_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v disadvantage_n in_o this_o respect_n for_o m._n secretary_n have_v take_v order_n that_o you_o shall_v have_v what_o book_n you_o will_v unless_o you_o will_v such_o as_o can_v be_v get_v hart._n the_o book_n that_o i_o will_v have_v be_v principal_o in_o deed_n the_o father_n and_o the_o counsel_n which_o all_o do_v make_v for_o we_o as_o do_v the_o scripture_n also_o but_o for_o my_o direction_n to_o find_v out_o their_o place_n in_o all_o point_n of_o controversy_n which_o i_o can_v neither_o remember_v ready_o nor_o dare_v to_o trust_v myself_o in_o they_o i_o will_v have_v our_o writer_n which_o in_o the_o several_a point_n whereof_o they_o treat_v have_v cite_v they_o and_o buyld_v themselves_o upon_o they_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o supremacy_n method_n doctor_n stapleton_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n eucharist_n doctor_n allen_n of_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n and_o image_n editi_fw-la doctor_n harpsfield_n who_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o alan_n cope_n &_o bear_v his_o name_n as_o copus_n certain_a letter_n in_o they_o show_v likewise_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n that_o lie_v in_o controversy_n they_o who_o in_o particular_a have_v best_a write_v of_o they_o &_o for_o they_o all_o in_o general_a s._n sent._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n &_o aqu._n father_n roberts_n dictate_v and_o chief_o 1●80_n the_o confession_n that_o torrensis_n a_o other_o father_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n have_v gather_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n which_o book_n we_o set_v the_o more_o by_o lector_fw-la because_o of_o all_o the_o father_n s_o augustine_n be_v the_o chief_a as_o well_o in_o our_o as_o your_o judgement_n and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n who_o consent_n be_v the_o rule_n whereby_o controversy_n shall_v be_v end_v rainoldes_n these_o you_o shall_v have_v god_n will_v and_o if_o you_o will_v jesuit_n canisius_n too_o because_o he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o many_o do_v esteem_v he_o high_o but_o this_o i_o must_v request_v you_o to_o look_v on_o the_o originalle_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n father_n which_o they_o do_v allege_v for_o they_o do_v persuade_v you_o that_o all_o do_v make_v for_o you_o but_o they_o abuse_v you_o in_o it_o they_o borrow_v some_o gold_n out_o of_o the_o lord_n treasure_n house_n and_o wine_n out_o of_o the_o doctor_n press_n but_o they_o be_v deceitful_a workman_n they_o do_v corrupt_v their_o gold_n with_o dross_n their_o wine_n with_o worse_a than_o water_n hart._n you_o shall_v find_v it_o hard_a to_o convince_v they_o of_o it_o then_o to_o charge_v they_o with_o it_o rainoldes_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o hard_a to_o make_v proof_n of_o half_a then_o to_o make_v claim_n of_o all_o yet_o you_o shall_v see_v both_o your_o claim_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o be_v more_o confidente_a than_o just_a and_o my_o reproof_n of_o your_o writer_n for_o their_o corrupt_a and_o forge_v of_o they_o as_o plain_o prove_v as_o utter_v if_o you_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v god_n lighten_v your_o eye_n that_o you_o may_v see_v &_o open_v your_o ear_n that_o you_o may_v hear_v and_o geve_v you_o both_o a_o soft_a hart_n and_o understanding_n mind_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a wise_o to_o discern_v and_o glad_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n when_o you_o shall_v hear_v it_o hart._n i_o trust_v i_o shall_v be_v able_a always_o both_o to_o see_v and_o to_o follow_v the_o truth_n but_o i_o be_o persuade_v you_o will_v be_v never_o able_a to_o show_v that_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o your_o church_n profess_v as_o by_o our_o conference_n i_o hope_v it_o shall_v be_v manifest_v rainoldes_n uuill_a you_o then_o to_o lay_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o conference_n let_v i_o know_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o separate_v yourself_o and_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o prayer_n and_o religion_n hart._n the_o cause_n be_v not_o many_o they_o may_v be_v all_o comprise_v in_o one_o your_o church_n be_v no_o church_n you_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o hart._n by_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_a man_n profess_v one_o faith_n under_o one_o head_n you_o profess_v not_o one_o faith_n under_o one_o head_n therefore_o you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n what_o be_v that_o one_o faith_n hart._n the_o catholic_a faith_n rainoldes_n who_o be_v that_o one_o head_n hart._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rainoldes_n then_o both_o the_o proposition_n of_o which_o you_o frame_v your_o argument_n be_v in_o part_n faulty_a the_o first_o in_o that_o you_o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_a man_n under_o one_o head_n the_o second_o in_o that_o you_o charge_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o we_o profess_v not_o one_o faith_n for_o we_o do_v profess_v that_o one_o faith_n the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o that_o one_o head_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hart._n i_o will_v prove_v the_o point_n of_o both_o my_o proposition_n the_o which_o you_o have_v deny_v first_o that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o her_o head_n next_o that_o the_o faith_n which_o you_o profess_v in_o england_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n rainoldes_n you_o will_v say_v somewhat_o for_o they_o but_o you_o will_v never_o prove_v they_o hart._n let_v the_o church_n judge_v for_o the_o first_o thus_o i_o prove_v it_o division_n s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o power_n over_o bishop_n that_o he_o have_v over_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n if_o of_o bishop_n then_o by_o consequent_a of_o the_o diocese_n subject_n to_o they_o if_o of_o all_o their_o diocese_n then_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n i_o have_v think_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n both_o be_v and_o be_v the_o head_n as_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o of_o apostle_n of_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o for_o the_o church_n be_v his_o
this_o be_v the_o mould_n of_o your_o own_o reason_n wherein_o you_o cast_v the_o church_n to_o have_v one_o visible_a head_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n a_o fancy_n more_o proportionable_a to_o the_o limb_n of_o popery_n then_o to_o saint_n paul_n doctrine_n touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o his_o drift_n and_o purpose_n therein_o be_v to_o show_v that_o 20._o as_o a_o man_n body_n be_v make_v of_o sundry_a member_n 25._o which_o be_v not_o all_o as_o excellent_a one_o as_o a_o other_o the_o hand_n as_o the_o head_n the_o foot_n as_o the_o hand_n yet_o they_o be_v join_v together_o to_o care_v one_o for_o a_o other_o all_o to_o maintain_v the_o body_n 28._o so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n consist_v of_o sundry_a christian_n as_o member_n some_o of_o great_a gift_n and_o calling_n than_o some_o the_o apostle_n than_o that_o teacher_n the_o teacher_n than_o the_o helper_n chapter_n yet_o all_o join_v together_o to_o love_n and_o serve_v one_o a_o other_o and_o keep_v the_o church_n in_o unity_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a first_o that_o in_o name_v 21._o the_o head_n he_o consider_v it_o not_o as_o a_o head_n proper_o but_o only_o as_o a_o principal_a member_n for_o so_o he_o apply_v it_o name_v all_o christian_n 27._o member_n and_o call_v they_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o put_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n next_o that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o head_n so_o consider_v he_o mean_v no_o one_o man_n but_o all_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n as_o they_o who_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o chief_a gift_n and_o place_v in_o the_o high_a function_n uuherefore_o if_o that_o word_n be_v strain_v to_o the_o uttermost_a as_o far_o as_o by_o the_o text_n it_o may_v the_o proof_n that_o it_o yield_v will_v argue_v a_o preeminence_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o general_a over_o the_o inferior_a member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o power_n of_o peter_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n much_o less_o of_o the_o pope_n over_o his_o fellow-bishop_n hart._n yet_o this_o it_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o name_n of_o head_n be_v not_o so_o give_v unto_o christ_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o a_o mortal_a man_n also_o not_o as_o a_o head_n proper_o you_o say_v but_o as_o a_o principal_a member_n and_o what_o say_v i_o else_o for_o i_o grant_v that_o christ_n be_v proper_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n improper_o yet_o you_o reprove_v i_o for_o it_o rainoldes_n i_o reprove_v you_o not_o because_o you_o give_v the_o title_n of_o head_n unto_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o pastor_n for_o their_o gift_n above_o the_o member_n of_o their_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v like_o head_n though_o many_o of_o they_o be_v tail_n 1●_n as_o the_o prophet_n call_v they_o but_o because_o you_o name_v he_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v due_a to_o none_o but_o christ._n for_o though_o you_o grant_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o quicken_a head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fountain_n whence_o there_o flow_v life_n into_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n yet_o you_o give_v the_o pope_n this_o soveraintie_n of_o headship_n that_o he_o shall_v direct_v 〈◊〉_d by_o his_o rule_n and_o power_n the_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n wherein_o as_o of_o the_o one_o side_n you_o debase_v the_o worthiness_n of_o his_o gift_n who_o give_v we_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o that_o you_o do_v appoint_v they_o to_o guide_v only_o the_o outward_a function_n of_o his_o body_n whereas_o 4.12_o he_o have_v give_v they_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o full_a perfit_v of_o his_o saint_n so_o of_o the_o other_o side_n you_o detract_v somewhat_o from_o the_o soveraintie_n of_o christ_n when_o you_o give_v his_o servant_n dominion_n to_o guide_v his_o church_n by_o rule_n and_o power_n whereas_o they_o be_v ordain_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n wherefore_o howsoever_o you_o allay_v the_o title_n which_o you_o give_v the_o pope_n and_o say_v you_o call_v he_o head_n not_o proper_o but_o improper_o a_o ministerial_a head_n yet_o you_o do_v imply_v that_o in_o this_o improper_o which_o can_v agree_v to_o none_o but_o he_o that_o proper_o be_v a_o head_n a_o head_n that_o do_v quicken_v guide_n and_o move_v the_o body_n even_o as_o in_o 19_o your_o canon_n law_n it_o be_v say_v of_o peter_n the_o lord_n do_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o preach_v the_o truth_n unto_o he_o principal_o 18._o to_o the_o intent_n that_o from_o he_o as_o it_o be_v from_o a_o certain_a head_n he_o may_v pour_v abroad_o his_o gift_n as_o it_o be_v into_o all_o the_o body_n hart._n these_o word_n that_o you_o reprove_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n of_o singular_a wit_n and_o judgement_n famous_a both_o for_o holiness_n and_o learning_n 87._o saint_n leo_n a_o ancient_a father_n who_o do_v flourish_v 440._o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o rainoldes_n they_o a●e_v the_o word_n i_o grant_v of_o a_o ancient_a a_o witty_a a_o learned_a holy_a man_n but_o a_o man_n and_o that_o be_v more_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n now_o man_n even_o the_o holy_a 18._o while_o they_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v some_o contagion_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o learning_n may_v puff_n up_o 8.1_o as_o it_o do_v the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o best_a wit_n be_v soon_o taint_v with_o ambition_n yea_o 20.22_o james_n and_o john_n 3.17_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n desire_a superiority_n and_o rome_n a_o great_a city_n do_v nourish_v great_a stateliness_n and_o that_o 27._o even_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n 370._o before_o leo._n so_o they_o love_a preeminence_n as_o 9_o diotrephes_n do_v take_v all_o occasion_n to_o get_v it_o and_o seek_v some_o colour_n to_o maintain_v it_o wherefore_o as_o one_o in_o hortens_fw-mi tully_n say_v to_o hortensius_n when_o he_o immoderate_o praise_a eloquence_n that_o he_o will_v have_v lift_v she_o up_o into_o heaven_n that_o himself_o may_v have_v go_v up_o with_o she_o as_o have_v great_a right_n unto_o she_o so_o many_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o leo_n not_o the_o least_o of_o they_o do_v lift_v up_o saint_n peter_n with_o praise_n to_o the_o sky_n that_o themselves_o may_v rise_v up_o with_o he_o as_o being_z forsooth_o his_o suae_fw-la heir_n the_o epistle_n and_o sermon_n of_o leo_n have_v manifest_a mark_n of_o this_o affection_n as_o to_o give_v a_o taste_n of_o they_o 87._o the_o lord_n do_v take_v peter_n into_o the_o feloship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n and_o 61._o we_o acknowledge_v the_o most_o singular_a care_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a peter_n for_o we_o all_o in_o this_o that_o god_n have_v loose_v the_o deceit_n of_o all_o slanderer_n and_o 50._o my_o writing_n be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o authority_n of_o my_o lord_n most_o bless_a peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o 62._o peter_n have_v confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o see_v in_o decision_n of_o faith_n have_v not_o suffer_v any_o thing_n amiss_o to_o be_v see_v about_o any_o of_o your_o person_n who_o have_v labour_v with_o we_o for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o 87._o we_o beseech_v you_o and_o advise_v you_o to_o keep_v the_o thing_n decree_v of_o we_o through_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n &_o the_o apostle_n most_o bless_a peter_n &_o suae_fw-la if_o any_o thing_n be_v well_o do_v or_o decree_v of_o we_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v obtain_v of_o god_n mercy_n by_o daily_a prayer_n it_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o s._n peter_n work_n and_o merit_n who_o power_n do_v live_v and_o authority_n excel_v in_o his_o own_o see_v and_o suae_fw-la he_o be_v so_o plentiful_o water_v of_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n that_o whereas_o he_o receive_v many_o thing_n alone_o yet_o nothing_o pass_v over_o to_o any_o man_n but_o by_o he_o to_o be_v short_a leo_n &_o by_o his_o example_n his_o successor_n after_o he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o such_o speech_n that_o in_o the_o common_a phrase_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o secretary_n all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v grow_v to_o be_v s._n peter_n their_o prerogative_n 45._o s._n peter_n right_a their_o dignity_n ibid._n saint_n peter_n honour_n their_o stateliness_n suae_fw-la s._n peter_n reverence_n subjection_n to_o they_o 87._o subjection_n to_o s._n peter_n a_o message_n from_o they_o 24._o a_o embassage_n from_o s._n peter_n thing_n do_v in_o their_o presence_n 4._o do_v in_o s._n peter_n presence_n land_n and_o possession_n give_v they_o sept_fw-fr give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o when_o they_o will_v have_v kingdom_n 81._o prince_n must_v get_v they_o for_o s._n peter_n their_o territory_n and_o lordship_n sintlegitimi_fw-la s._n
by_o which_o a_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v open_v because_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n be_v as_o it_o be_v unlock_v to_o they_o who_o have_v remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o lock_v to_o the_o rest_n which_o thing_n be_v so_o this_o sum_n arise_v of_o they_o that_o since_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n christ_n therefore_o when_o he_o promise_v the_o key_n mean_v that_o power_n and_o when_o he_o give_v that_o power_n give_v the_o key_n but_o he_o give_v that_o power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n it_o follow_v then_o he_o give_v the_o key_n to_o they_o all_o hart._n you_o expound_v these_o place_n i_o can_v tell_v how_o for_o much_o of_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v say_v by_o we_o also_o and_o yet_o you_o agree_v not_o with_o we_o in_o the_o principal_a howsoever_o you_o cast_v the_o parcel_n of_o your_o count_n there_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o sum_n wherefore_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o if_o i_o allow_v it_o not_o for_o to_o use_v 1._o his_o word_n who_o opinion_n though_o you_o mislike_v he_o i_o far_o esteem_v above_o you_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o christ_n promise_v to_o peter_n he_o simple_o mean_v all_o power_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o whatsoever_o sense_n you_o take_v it_o may_v be_v shut_v and_o open_v as_o for_o that_o which_o follow_v 16.19_o and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n clavium_fw-la this_o be_v not_o as_o some_o have_v think_v a_o explication_n or_o limitation_n of_o the_o key_n for_o so_o by_o those_o word_n shall_v christ_n have_v restrain_v the_o power_n of_o peter_n to_o the_o only_a outward_a ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o sententia_fw-la it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o the_o schoolman_n that_o by_o those_o word_n 18.18_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v and_o so_o forth_o which_o be_v like_a to_o these_o word_n speak_v unto_o peter_n and_o have_v the_o same_o meaning_n a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n be_v make_v as_o by_o those_o other_o word_n 20.23_o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v and_o so_o forth_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n in_o the_o inward_a court_n be_v make_v wherefore_o if_o 1●_n in_o this_o place_n that_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v be_v a_o explication_n or_o limitation_n of_o the_o key_n then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n a_o power_n judicial_a only_o in_o the_o outward_a court_n which_o be_v but_o a_o part_n and_o that_o a_o lesser_a part_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n for_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o excellent_a be_v the_o power_n of_o remit_v sin_n then_o of_o excommunicate_v or_o suspend_v a_o man_n from_o his_o office_n or_o honour_n and_o therefore_o this_o may_v be_v exercise_v by_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o priest_n whereas_o the_o other_o belong_v unto_o priest_n only_o again_o because_o our_o saviour_n ●it_n add_v with_o a_o conjunction_n &_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v it_o must_v note_v different_o some_o distinct_a power_n at_o the_o least_o in_o special_a even_o as_o the_o other_o thing_n all_o that_o go_v before_o utter_v coniunctive_o be_v thing_n distinct_a and_o different_a to_o wit_n and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o and_o upon_o this_o peter_n and_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n and_o last_o and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n and_o so_o forth_o wherefore_o in_o these_o last_o word_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n not_o only_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o the_o court_n either_o outward_a or_o inward_a which_o both_o be_v only_o key_n partial_a action_n of_o the_o key_n but_o because_o the_o key_n themselves_o be_v promise_v he_o indefinite_o and_o be_v not_o restrain_v to_o any_o one_o kind_n of_o open_v or_o shut_v doubtless_o all_o the_o power_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o he_o how_o great_a soever_o it_o be_v and_o of_o what_o sort_n soever_o now_o clavibus_fw-la the_o whole_a power_n and_o correspondent_a full_o and_o even_o to_o the_o key_n be_v to_o open_v and_o shut_v what_o mean_v soever_o it_o be_v do_v by_o for_o to_o open_v and_o shut_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o key_n in_o token_n whereof_o the_o key_n of_o the_o city_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n that_o by_o his_o commandment_n the_o city_n may_v be_v shut_v and_o open_v to_o receive_v the_o key_n therefore_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whither_o you_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o everlasting_a life_n or_o for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n now_o this_o be_v do_v by_o diverse_a and_o many_o other_o way_n beside_o those_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o either_o court_n for_o pastor_n do_v open_a and_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o one_o by_o exercise_v that_o power_n the_o other_o by_o withdraw_v it_o in_o their_o whole_a spiritual_a government_n in_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n in_o minister_a of_o sacrament_n in_o make_v of_o law_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o declare_v article_n of_o faith_n in_o decide_v point_n of_o controversy_n and_o doubt_n to_o be_v short_a the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v divide_v into_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o the_o key_n of_o power_n to_o open_v the_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n which_o christ_n himself_o exercise_v in_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o of_o luke_n and_o whereof_o he_o say_v to_o the_o lawyer_n 11.52_o you_o have_v take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o so_o forth_o the_o key_n of_o power_n be_v either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n and_o jurisdiction_n itself_o be_v either_o in_o the_o outward_a court_n by_o excommunicate_v by_o suspend_v from_o office_n by_o grant_v of_o pardon_n and_o make_v of_o law_n or_o in_o the_o inward_a court_n by_o forgive_a of_o sin_n all_o this_o clavium_fw-la most_o ample_a power_n &_o correspondent_a whole_o and_o even_o to_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v in_o this_o place_n by_o christ_n to_o peter_n only_o which_o as_o the_o force_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n key_n so_o the_o kind_n of_o speech_n of_o holy_a scripture_n show_v for_o in_o esay_n the_o prophet_n when_o it_o have_v be_v say_v eliachim_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n eliakim_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n 22.22_o the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n will_v i_o lay_v on_o his_o shoulder_n the_o scripture_n declare_v the_o use_n of_o this_o key_n do_v by_o and_o by_o add_v and_o he_o shall_v open_v and_o none_o shall_v shut_v he_o shall_v shut_v and_o none_o shall_v open_v which_o likewise_o be_v speak_v again_o of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n for_o he_o be_v call_v 3.7_o the_o holy_a one_o and_o true_a which_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n which_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v wherefore_o as_o eliakim_n in_o figure_n christ_n in_o truth_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n receive_v withal_o the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v in_o like_a sort_n s._n peter_n be_v to_o receive_v in_o the_o room_n and_o steed_n of_o christ_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v out_o of_o controversy_n to_o receive_v withal_o the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o only_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o judgement_n of_o both_o the_o court_n which_o be_v only_o clau●um_fw-la partial_a not_o total_a and_o lesser_o not_o chief_a action_n of_o the_o key_n which_o also_o be_v commit_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o eightienth_n of_o matthew_n and_o twenty_o of_o john_n fuerint_fw-la whereas_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n alone_o but_o also_o beside_o of_o govern_v of_o teach_v of_o dispose_v and_o do_v all_o thing_n which_o may_v any_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o general_a duty_n of_o a_o pastor_n which_o action_n be_v full_o and_o even_o correspondent_a to_o the_o key_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o in_o those_o word_n be_v promise_v omnes_fw-la to_o peter_n alone_o principal_o before_o and_o over_o all_o the_o rest_n this_o be_v d._n stapletons_n judgement_n of_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n wherein_o the_o ground_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n and_o headship_n over_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v down_o very_o plain_o
they_o do_v go_v with_o he_o or_o else_o fidei_fw-la the_o oth-maker_n mean_v not_o to_o bind_v you_o to_o it_o let_v we_o give_v a_o passport_n then_o unto_o the_o father_n it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o man_n be_v move_v in_o conscience_n by_o light_n of_o truth_n to_o vary_v from_o they_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o move_v he_o the_o same_o be_v not_o mean_v say_v he_o by_o the_o key_n and_o by_o the_o word_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v as_o some_o man_n have_v think_v and_o why_o for_o all_o the_o schoolman_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v do_v note_v a_o power_n judicial_a in_o the_o outward_a court_n only_o to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n in_o the_o inward_a court_n by_o the_o outward_a court_n he_o mean_v the_o consistory_n wherein_o the_o church-discipline_n and_o censure_n be_v exercise_v by_o the_o inward_a court_n the_o conscience_n wherein_o a_o man_n trespass_n and_o sin_n be_v bind_v or_o loose_v so_o in_o effect_n he_o say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o remit_v sin_n and_o censure_a sinner_n be_v only_o mean_v in_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o the_o most_o ample_a and_o large_a power_n of_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n sententia_fw-la by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o schoolman_n which_o proof_n though_o it_o can_v weigh_v as_o much_o for_o he_o as_o the_o father_n against_o he_o yet_o herein_o his_o deal_n be_v orderly_a and_o plain_a that_o leave_v the_o father_n he_o cleave_v to_o the_o schoolman_n for_o when_o all_o be_v do_v the_o schoolman_n be_v the_o man_n that_o must_v uphold_v papistry_n with_o the_o friendly_a help_n of_o the_o canonist_n their_o brother_n the_o scripture_n and_o father_n will_v be_v pretend_v for_o a_o show_n to_o countenance_v the_o matter_n but_o they_o be_v like_a to_o image_n in_o old_a building_n of_o antic_a work_n which_o be_v frame_v so_o that_o with_o their_o shoulder_n they_o seem_v to_o bear_v the_o roof_n whereas_o that_o in_o deed_n do_v rest_n on_o wall_n or_o pillar_n the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o canonist_n the_o fountain_n of_o the_o corruption_n which_o have_v infect_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o schoolman_n in_o doctrine_n by_o the_o opinion_n of_o popery_n the_o canoniste_n in_o discipline_n by_o the_o state_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o canonist_n be_v the_o two_o pillar_n that_o uphold_v your_o church_n as_o 16.29_o the_o house_n of_o dagon_n in_o the_o which_o the_o philistine_n triumph_n and_o insult_v over_o the_o faith_n and_o god_n of_o samson_n what_o then_o if_o the_o schoolman_n who_o 2d_o opposition_n of_o science_n false_o so_o call_v be_v note_v by_o s._n paul_n that_o timothee_n may_v avoid_v they_o who_o the_o most_o ofthem_n come_v with_o foot_n unwashed_a into_o the_o lord_n sanctuary_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o tongue_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n write_v great_a help_n to_o understand_v his_o meaning_n search_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o human_a sense_n and_o so_o expound_v it_o thereafter_o what_o if_o they_o say_v that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v do_v make_v a_o judge_n only_o in_o the_o outward_a court_n to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n in_o the_o inward_a court_n and_o both_o import_n less_o than_o the_o key_n which_o open_v all_o in_o court_n and_o country_n i_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_a by_o conference_n of_o the_o scripture_n you_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o father_n teach_v the_o contrary_n where_o be_v your_o discretion_n who_o though_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o prove_v the_o father_n as_o you_o grant_v do_v say_v it_o be_v so_o yet_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o because_o the_o schoolman_n think_v not_o so_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o state_n which_o be_v allow_v and_o ordain_v by_o the_o queen_n and_o council_n that_o although_o they_o will_v it_o yet_o may_v it_o not_o be_v do_v why_o because_o the_o yeoman_n of_o the_o kitchen_n like_o it_o not_o hart._n if_o you_o believe_v so_o right_o as_o you_o ought_v with_o catholic_n you_o will_v not_o think_v so_o base_o of_o schoolman_n as_o you_o do_v for_o as_o 1._o melchior_n canus_n write_v well_o and_o true_o the_o contempt_n of_o schoole-divinitie_n be_v a_o companion_n of_o heresy_n &_o the_o heresy_n of_o luther_n of_o wicklef_n of_o melanchthon_n and_o in_o a_o word_n of_o all_o the_o lutheran_n do_v seem_v to_o have_v flow_v most_o from_o that_o fountain_n even_o from_o the_o despise_n of_o the_o schoolman_n judgement_n but_o howsoever_o you_o esteem_v they_o 4._o their_o common_a opinion_n when_o they_o all_o consent_n and_o agree_v in_o one_o be_v of_o such_o weight_n with_o we_o that_o we_o account_v it_o a_o point_n of_o great_a rashness_n and_o almost_o of_o heresy_n to_o dissent_v from_o they_o they_o have_v not_o such_o ornament_n offiner_fw-ge learning_n and_o the_o tongue_n as_o some_o in_o our_o day_n have_v but_o they_o have_v the_o substance_n rome_n the_o pith_n of_o all_o science_n chief_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n one_o of_o the_o grave_a and_o learn_a divine_n that_o ever_o christ_n church_n have_v whatsoever_o ignorant_a heretic_n which_o understand_v he_o not_o esteem_v of_o he_o rainoldes_n my_o judgement_n of_o the_o schoolman_n be_v such_o as_o they_o deserve_v if_o canus_n have_v judge_v more_o favourable_o ofthem_n he_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v with_o since_o 1._o himself_o desire_v to_o be_v think_v a_o schoolman_n though_o if_o i_o shall_v grant_v they_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v that_o when_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o they_o must_v be_v follow_v they_o will_v not_o trouble_v we_o great_o in_o many_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o be_v at_o such_o contention_n for_o themost_a part_n and_o that_o about_o such_o matter_n that_o s._n 6.4_o paul_n reproof_n of_o question_n and_o strife_n of_o word_n never_o fall_v on_o any_o more_o just_o then_o on_o they_o but_o as_o canus_n speak_v of_o schoole-divines_a and_o schoole-divinitie_n he_o and_o i_o dissent_v not_o though_o i_o be_v against_o they_o and_o he_o for_o they_o in_o show_n sophocles_n the_o poet_n a_o writer_n of_o tragedy_n be_v ask_v ofhi_v friend_n why_o when_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o person_n ofwoman_n he_o make_v they_o always_o good_a whereas_o euripides_n make_v they_o bad_a because_o i_o quoth_v he_o do_v represent_v woman_n such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v euripides_n such_o as_o they_o be_v so_o the_o matter_n fare_v between_o i_o and_o canus_n for_o he_o do_v paint_v out_o schoolman_n such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o i_o such_o as_o they_o be_v i_o speak_v against_o they_o who_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n have_v profane_v divinity_n with_o philosophy_n or_o rather_o sophistry_n and_o yet_o be_v call_v schoole-divines_a when_o they_o be_v neither_o scholar_n in_o truth_n nor_o divine_n he_o account_v none_o a_o schoole-divine_a but_o he_o 1._o who_o reason_v of_o god_n and_o thing_n concern_v god_n fit_o wise_o learned_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o ordinance_n of_o god_n now_o if_o none_o be_v a_o schoole-divine_a but_o such_o nor_o any_o divinity_n schoole-divinitie_n but_o that_o sit_fw-la which_o be_v set_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o canus_n do_v define_v it_o then_o shall_v i_o glad_o both_o yield_v to_o schoole-divinitie_n &_o follow_v schooledivine_n but_o i_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v schoole-divines_a who_o you_o mean_v in_o cite_v schoolman_n yea_o even_a thomas_n of_o aquine_n who_o your_o pope_n set_v more_o by_o then_o by_o all_o the_o doctor_n place_v he_o as_o thomae_fw-la chief_a and_o aquin_n first_o after_o the_o scripture_n and_o worthy_o for_o he_o be_v the_o first_o thorough-papist_n of_o name_n that_o ever_o write_v and_o with_o his_o rare_a gift_n of_o wit_n learning_n and_o industry_n do_v set_v out_o popery_n most_o that_o he_o may_v well_o be_v motuproprior_a praise_v as_o the_o standerd-bearer_n of_o the_o faith_n maintain_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n even_o he_o will_v i_o follow_v so_o long_o as_o he_o show_v himself_o such_o a_o schoolman_n as_o canus_n praise_v to_o us._n but_o he_o show_v not_o himself_o such_o a_o schoolman_n when_o he_o do_v as_o he_o do_v oft_o so_o much_o we_o understand_v in_o he_o keep_v down_o the_o truth_n &_o set_v up_o error_n either_o by_o mistake_v the_o scripture_n against_o scripture_n or_o by_o hold_v the_o corruption_n of_o faithful_a man_n as_o incorrupt_a or_o by_o follow_v the_o glimpse_n of_o philosopher_n as_o perfect_a light_n by_o mistake_v the_o scripture_n through_o faulty_a translation_n or_o exposition_n of_o man_n by_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n or_o some_o opinion_n of_o father_n by_o the_o glimpse_n of_o philosopher_n in_o take_v
they_o break_v it_o hart._n christ_n 7._o by_o singular_a privilege_n do_v exempt_v they_o from_o it_o rainoldes_n then_o there_o be_v a_o law_n which_o do_v bind_v they_o to_o it_o hart._n what_o else_o for_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v it_o though_o they_o do_v it_o not_o rainoldes_n shall_v that_o they_o do_v not_o how_o do_v you_o prove_v it_o hart._n because_o a_o order_n must_v be_v set_v which_o shall_v be_v keep_v by_o the_o posterity_n rainoldes_n a_o order_n for_o who_o for_o apostle_n you_o 13._o grant_v that_o man_n may_v not_o ordain_v they_o for_o bishop_n 1.5.7_o other_o man_n do_v ordain_v they_o as_o rightful_o as_o peter_n do_v but_o you_o have_v rather_o make_v this_o show_n of_o a_o answer_n then_o say_v that_o which_o you_o shall_v say_v in_o truth_n i_o can_v tell_v for_o you_o deal_v with_o we_o as_o roscio_n erucius_n do_v with_o roscius_n who_o when_o he_o accuse_v that_o he_o have_v kill_v his_o father_n because_o his_o father_n purpose_v to_o disinherit_v he_o thou_o must_v prove_v say_v tully_n that_o his_o father_n do_v purpose_v it_o the_o father_n do_v purpose_n to_o disinherit_v his_o son_n for_o what_o cause_n i_o know_v not_o do_v he_o disinherit_v he_o no._n who_o do_v hinder_v it_o he_o do_v mind_n it_o do_v he_o mind_v it_o who_o tell_v he_o so_o no_o body_n your_o answer_n unto_o i_o be_v very_o like_a to_o these_o but_o somewhat_o more_o unorderly_o for_o to_o ground_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n on_o peter_n you_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v all_o receive_v their_o power_n at_o least_o their_o bishoply_n power_n of_o he_o you_o must_v make_v it_o manifest_a that_o they_o do_v so_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o receive_v their_o power_n of_o peter_n what_o scripture_n say_v so_o i_o know_v not_o do_v they_o receive_v it_o no._n who_o do_v hinder_v it_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v it_o shall_v they_o have_v do_v it_o how_o prove_v you_o it_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v i_o may_v not_o say_v of_o you_o as_o tully_n of_o erucius_n what_o be_v it_o else_o to_o abuse_v the_o law_n and_o judgement_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o judge_n to_o lucre_n and_o to_o lust_n than_o so_o to_o accuse_v and_o to_o object_v that_o which_o you_o not_o only_o can_v not_o prove_v but_o do_v not_o as_o much_o as_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v it_o for_o i_o must_v bear_v you_o witness_n you_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o you_o shall_v do_v better_a to_o surcease_v that_o endeavour_n unless_o your_o proof_n be_v sound_a and_o have_v not_o only_o show_v but_o also_o weight_n of_o truth_n in_o they_o the_o three_o chapter_n the_o performance_n which_o christ_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v make_v of_o the_o supremacy_n promise_v 1_o in_o say_v to_o peter_n feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n 2_o and_o strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o point_n thereof_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o and_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n what_o and_o how_o they_o make_v for_o peter_n how_o for_o all_o hart_n the_o promise_n make_v to_o peter_n have_v not_o only_o show_v but_o also_o weight_n of_o truth_n to_o prove_v his_o supremacy_n but_o to_o satisfy_v you_o division_n who_o think_v it_o not_o weighty_a enough_o of_o itself_o i_o will_v add_v thereto_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o and_o so_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o weight_n with_o the_o advantage_n 9_o for_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o three_o apostle_n james_n john_n and_o thomas_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n m●mento_fw-la even_o at_o the_o very_a moment_n when_o he_o will_v now_o ascend_v up_o unto_o his_o father_n and_o therefore_o either_o then_o or_o never_o make_v his_o vicar_n 17._o pasce_fw-la agnos_fw-la meos_fw-la pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n rainoldes_n not_o at_o the_o very_a moment_n that_o be_v the_o advantage_n i_o ween_v which_o you_o will_v add_v to_o make_v up_o the_o weight_n as_o some_o add_v eare-wax_n to_o light_a angel_n but_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v what_o do_v you_o gather_v of_o they_o hart._n christ_n in_o those_o word_n do_v true_o perform_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o key_n which_o he_o have_v make_v to_o peter_n but_o christ_n give_v he_o commission_n to_o feed_v his_o whole_a flock_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o therefore_o he_o make_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o apostle_n rainoldes_n this_o reason_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n the_o sinew_n of_o it_o have_v no_o strength_n hart._n why_o so_o rainoldes_n because_o in_o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v sheep_n and_o lamb_n neither_o be_v the_o commission_n give_v unto_o peter_n and_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o no_o more_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o then_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o more_o yet_o not_o so_o much_o as_o shall_v make_v he_o their_o supreme_a head_n hart._n if_o you_o prove_v the_o second_o of_o these_o three_o point_n the_o other_o two_o be_v superfluous_a rainoldes_n they_o be_v so_o but_o you_o shall_v have_v weight_n with_o advantage_n to_o overwaigh_a your_o weight_n to_o we_o ward_n and_o for_o the_o first_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o the_o commission_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o peter_n he_o have_v give_v it_o he_o 20.21_o before_o when_o he_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n soever_o you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v to_o they_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v hart._n but_o christ_n give_v he_o not_o so_o much_o at_o that_o time_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o wherefore_o part_n of_o his_o promise_n be_v perform_v then_o part_n be_v perform_v after_o then_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v joint_o with_o the_o apostle_n after_o that_o he_o have_v over_o they_o rainoldes_n this_o be_v your_o bulwark_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n but_o it_o be_v build_v on_o a_o lie_n for_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v promise_v he_o be_v imply_v in_o that_o he_o have_v say_v 16.19_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v it_o not_o hart._n it_o be_v so_o what_o then_o rainoldes_n but_o in_o this_o commission_n send_v he_o with_o full_a authority_n and_o power_n he_o give_v he_o all_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o this_o commission_n therefore_o he_o give_v he_o all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v hart._n i_o deny_v that_o he_o give_v he_o all_o the_o key_n in_o this_o commission_n rainoldes_n i_o prove_v it_o all_o the_o key_n as_o it_o have_v appear_v by_o 3._o your_o own_o confession_n be_v only_o too_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o power_n or_o rather_o both_o of_o power_n by_o thomas_n of_o aquines_n judgement_n who_o you_o rather_o follow_v but_o christ_n give_v he_o both_o those_o in_o this_o commission_n 20.21_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o in_o this_o commission_n he_o give_v he_o all_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o key_n he_o give_v he_o in_o this_o he_o give_v the_o same_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o give_v as_o much_o authority_n therefore_o to_o they_o all_o as_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n but_o that_o be_v the_o next_o point_n hart._n yet_o they_o receive_v 2.1_o afterward_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o heaven_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n and_o therefore_o they_o receive_v not_o their_o whole_a commission_n of_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n they_o wait_v for_o a_o part_n of_o it_o rainoldes_n yes_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o commission_n so_o to_o wait_v for_o as_o it_o be_v further_o declare_v by_o s._n luke_n when_o 45._o their_o understanding_n be_v open_v by_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n he_o command_v they_o to_o 49._o stay_v in_o jerusalem_n until_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o a_o high_a a_o king_n who_o put_v man_n in_o commission_n of_o peace_n do_v give_v they_o authority_n to_o execute_v that_o charge_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o commission_n if_o they_o perhaps_o have_v not_o such_o wealth_n as_o be_v requisite_a for_o justice_n of_o peace_n to_o discharge_v their_o duty_n and_o the_o king_n will_v give_v they_o land_n by_o such_o a_o day_n thereby_o to_o furnish_v they_o unto_o it_o they_o receive_v by_o their_o land_n not_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v but_o ability_n which_o they_o want_v and_o the_o better_a they_o be_v land_v the_o more_o be_v they_o enable_v but_o not_o the_o more_o authorize_v to_o execute_v their_o duty_n christ_n the_o king_n of_o king_n do_v put_v his_o apostle_n in_o 5.20_o the_o commission_n of_o peace_n of_o heavenly_a peace_n not_o
be_v not_o pastor_n by_o the_o former_a sense_n by_o the_o late_a whosoever_o be_v equal_a in_o the_o apostleship_n must_v needs_o consequent_o be_v equal_a in_o the_o pastorship_n too_o your_o distinction_n that_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o the_o one_o not_o in_o the_o other_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n than_o a_o other_o of_o gubernationis_fw-la d._n stapletons_n who_o say_v that_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n of_o government_n but_o not_o of_o regiment_n hart._n you_o deprave_v his_o word_n for_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n give_v to_o peter_n the_o power_n of_o regiment_n or_o to_o command_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o the_o power_n of_o government_n or_o to_o execute_v because_o in_o government_n of_o the_o church_n peter_n must_v prescribe_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v and_o they_o must_v execute_v it_o rainoldes_n i_o deprave_v they_o not_o unless_o he_o speak_v sottish_o he_o know_v not_o himself_o what_o for_o his_o drift_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n all_o have_v equal_a power_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o with_o a_o threefold_a difference_n of_o which_o this_o be_v one_o that_o they_o have_v equal_a power_n forsooth_o to_o do_v and_o execute_v all_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n but_o so_o that_o peter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o regiment_n to_o command_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o power_n of_o government_n to_o execute_v which_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o queen_n majesty_n and_o the_o sheriff_n of_o london_n have_v equal_a power_n both_o yet_o with_o a_o difference_n to_o wit_n that_o her_o majesty_n have_v the_o power_n of_o regiment_n that_o be_v to_o command_v when_o a_o traitor_n shall_v suffer_v and_o the_o sheriff_n the_o power_n of_o government_n that_o be_v to_o execute_v that_o which_o she_o command_v if_o you_o shall_v preach_v thus_o in_o london_n our_o londoner_n will_v smile_v at_o it_o i_o think_v that_o this_o heresy_n have_v make_v our_o wit_n dull_a your_o catholic_a distinction_n be_v so_o sharp_a and_o subtle_a that_o we_o can_v conceive_v they_o hart._n you_o may_v flout_v as_o well_o if_o you_o listen_v at_o s._n gregory_n who_o though_o he_o use_v not_o the_o word_n of_o this_o distinction_n yet_o he_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o say_v 38._o that_o andrew_n james_n and_o john_n be_v head_n of_o several_a congregation_n and_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n peter_n rainoldes_n if_o i_o shall_v touch_v gregory_n for_o this_o i_o shall_v do_v he_o wrong_n as_o great_a wrong_n almost_o as_o your_o 7._o doctor_n do_v who_o allege_v it_o out_o of_o gregory_n for_o though_o he_o be_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o well-willer_n of_o s._n peter_n yet_o in_o that_o epistle_n whence_o those_o word_n be_v cite_v he_o call_v christ_n ecclesiae_fw-la the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n peter_n ecclesiae_fw-la the_o chief_a member_n and_o other_o member_n of_o it_o also_o d._n stapleton_n think_v it_o a_o small_a thing_n that_o peter_n shall_v be_v count_v as_o the_o chief_a member_n unless_o he_o be_v the_o head_n too_o have_v upon_o mention_n of_o the_o one_o head_n cog_v in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n ecclesiae_fw-la like_o a_o cunning_a gamester_n to_o help_v a_o dye_n at_o a_o need_n alas_o a_o man_n must_v enterprise_v somewhat_o in_o such_o case_n for_o you_o be_v all_o undo_v if_o this_o game_n shall_v be_v lose_v hart._n i_o marvel_v that_o you_o blush_v not_o to_o use_v such_o uncivil_a speech_n and_o taunt_n against_o d._n stapleton_n a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n even_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n rainoldes_n a_o man_n not_o of_o so_o great_a learning_n as_o read_v if_o you_o will_v take_v my_o judgement_n in_o it_o yet_o i_o wish_v for_o his_o own_o sake_n that_o his_o learning_n be_v as_o good_a as_o it_o be_v great_a but_o for_o the_o uncivil_a speech_n and_o taunt_n which_o i_o use_v against_o he_o weigh_v the_o occasion_n and_o circumstance_n of_o they_o if_o he_o have_v not_o deserve_v as_o 4●_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n let_v i_o be_v rebuke_v when_o i_o touch_v he_o as_o christ_n they_o but_o you_o deal_v herein_o as_o ●lacco_n tully_n report_v that_o athenagoras_n do_v of_o his_o fault_n he_o say_v nothing_o he_o complain_v of_o his_o punishment_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o d._n stapleton_n to_o take_v up_o i_o with_o his_o taunt_n of_o 1●_n caluinist_n anglocaluinist_n 9_o puritan_n and_o that_o undeserued_o but_o if_o i_o reprove_v on_o just_a cause_n with_o plain_a term_n his_o cog_a corrupt_a belie_v sclaunder_a abuse_v both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n it_o be_v a_o heinous_a matter_n and_o to_o be_v blush_v at_o let_v they_o blush_v m._n hart_n 22.15_o who_o love_n or_o make_v lie_n either_o by_o commit_v such_o shameful_a trick_n of_o falsehood_n or_o by_o partake_v with_o they_o it_o be_v no_o shame_n for_o i_o to_o note_v they_o and_o reproove_v they_o hart._n why_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o there_o be_v no_o copy_n of_o s._n gregory_n work_n which_o have_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n insert_v in_o that_o place_n rainoldes_n i_o think_v that_o none_o have_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o none_o shall_v have_v for_o in_o 36._o a_o other_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o argument_n when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o all_o christian_n christo._n do_v cleave_v to_o only_o one_o head_n he_o add_v imeane_n to_o christ_n and_o have_v in_o this_o same_o epistle_n put_v that_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o peter_n that_o peter_n be_v a_o member_n christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o show_v manifest_o who_o he_o mean_v by_o head_n a_o thing_n so_o apparent_a that_o 34._o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la do_v cite_v those_o word_n of_o gregory_n membra_fw-la with_o christ_n name_n insert_v either_o as_o have_v read_v they_o so_o in_o some_o copy_n or_o to_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o how_o much_o the_o more_o shameful_a be_v stapletons_n deal_n who_o foy_v in_o peter_n too_o set_v by_o that_o conveyance_n the_o pope_n in_o christ_n room_n but_o you_o be_v best_a to_o go_v forward_o with_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o when_o you_o have_v find_v nothing_o in_o they_o come_v to_o the_o father_n after_o hart._n you_o be_v very_o peremptory_a still_o in_o your_o speech_n i_o will_v find_v in_o they_o as_o much_o for_o the_o substance_n as_o i_o have_v affirm_v for_o howsoever_o the_o word_n of_o pastoral_a charge_n and_o the_o apostleship_n the_o power_n of_o regiment_n and_o government_n agree_v with_o my_o meaning_n my_o meaning_n i_o be_o sure_a agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o stand_v with_o good_a reason_n rainoldes_n then_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o hereafter_o to_o refrain_v from_o such_o foggy_a distinction_n devise_v to_o choke_v the_o blind_a who_o eat_v many_o a_o fly_n and_o express_v your_o meaning_n in_o clear_a and_o plain_a word_n lest_o we_o suspect_v that_o you_o fancy_n darkness_n more_o than_o light_n hart._n this_o be_v my_o meaning_n that_o peter_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o apostle_n to_o feed_v they_o to_o rule_v they_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n of_o they_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v neither_o over_o he_o nor_o one_o over_o a_o other_o rainoldes_n so._n now_o make_v proof_n of_o it_o hart._n christ_n do_v say_v to_o peter_n 21.17_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n whereof_o thus_o i_o reason_n christ_n do_v charge_n peter_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n all_o even_o all_o his_o sheep_n without_o exception_n but_o the_o apostle_n be_v sheep_n of_o christ._n therefore_o he_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o feed_v they_o also_o rainoldes_n christ_n say_v to_o the_o apostle_n 16.15_o go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n whereof_o thus_o i_o reason_n christ_n do_v charge_v his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n to_o every_o one_o without_o exception_n but_o peter_n be_v a_o creature_n therefore_o they_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o preach_v to_o he_o also_o now_o if_o i_o will_v play_v with_o word_n as_o your_o man_n do_v i_o can_v show_v that_o this_o reason_n must_v overmaster_v you_o in_o the_o plain_a field_n for_o christ_n say_v not_o to_o peter_n feed_v all_o my_o sheep_n but_o he_o say_v to_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o every_o creature_n hart._n but_o you_o shall_v consider_v 10._o that_o christ_n give_v that_o commandment_n to_o peter_n give_v it_o with_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o sheep_n and_o the_o lamb_n as_o 10._o s._n ambrose_n have_v note_v well_o set_v i_o down_o i_o pray_v his_o own_o word_n in_o latin_a tertiò_fw-la dominus_fw-la interrogavit_fw-la &_o noniam_fw-la
for_o the_o syriake_n translation_n which_o yourself_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o different_a in_o sound_n yet_o be_v one_o in_o sense_n because_o our_o saviour_n speak_v in_o the_o syriake_n tongue_n and_o in_o the_o syriake_n both_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d express_v here_o also_o the_o two_o sundry_a greek_a word_n by_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v use_v the_o same_o word_n and_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o both_o which_o interpretation_n shall_v be_v of_o great_a credit_n with_o you_o in_o this_o point_n than_o it_o be_v in_o that_o because_o your_o authentical_a latin_a translation_n which_o there_o dissent_v from_o it_o agree_v with_o it_o here_o express_v likewise_o both_o by_o pasce_fw-la unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o your_o authentical_a latin_a do_v not_o express_v full_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o greek_a hart._n a_o translation_n can_v express_v the_o force_n always_o of_o word_n in_o the_o original_n as_o in_o sirach_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la it_o be_v observe_v of_o the_o hebrew_n rainoldes_n you_o say_v true_a how_o much_o the_o more_o be_v they_o to_o blame_v 4._o who_o decree_v that_o a_o translation_n shall_v be_v account_v as_o authentical_a expositionibus_fw-la in_o all_o divinitie-exercise_n and_o no_o man_n under_o any_o pretence_n to_o reject_v it_o but_o if_o there_o have_v be_v such_o force_n and_o importance_n in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d your_o latin_a translator_n can_v have_v express_v it_o easy_o for_o 28._o otherwhere_o he_o do_v translate_v it_o dei_fw-la to_o rule_v and_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o mean_a pastor_n than_o peter_n even_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n which_o bewray_v further_o the_o silly_a state_n of_o your_o proof_n ground_v on_o the_o word_n for_o if_o peter_n be_v ordain_v supreme_a head_n because_o he_o be_v will_v to_o rule_v the_o 〈◊〉_d sheep_n or_o agnos_fw-la lamb_n what_o headship_n may_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n claim_n who_o be_v make_v overseer_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v both_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n but_o your_o last_o proof_n upon_o the_o word_n designatur_fw-la to_o feed_v which_o signify_v you_o say_v a_o power_n most_o full_a and_o absolute_a be_v most_o out_o of_o square_n and_o neither_o agree_v with_o yourselves_o nor_o with_o truth_n and_o reason_n for_o you_o say_v that_o lamb_n be_v only_o feed_v of_o peter_n sheep_n both_o feed_v and_o rule_v which_o be_v fond_a if_o to_o rule_v be_v no_o more_o then_o to_o feed_v fond_a if_o to_o feed_v imply_v a_o power_n most_o full_a and_o absolute_a beside_o that_o to_o feed_v be_v to_o nourish_v christian_n with_o 3.2_o milk_n or_o strong_a meat_n according_a to_o their_o state_n as_o they_o be_v either_o lamb_n or_o sheep_n wherefore_o if_o that_o import_n the_o fullness_n of_o power_n which_o no_o man_n have_v but_o one_o to_o weet_v the_o supreme_a head_n how_o great_a be_v your_o cruelty_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n who_o leave_v but_o one_o pastor_n throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o it_o or_o if_o you_o leave_v more_o &_o grant_v that_o several_a church_n shall_v have_v their_o several_a pastor_n after_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n how_o great_a be_v your_o folly_n who_o grant_v we_o so_o many_o pastor_n &_o feeder_n yet_o say_v that_o one_o alone_o have_v the_o charge_n to_o feed_v and_o that_o import_v a_o supremacy_n for_o if_o every_o pastor_n have_v charge_n to_o feed_v his_o flock_n and_o to_o feed_v impli_v a_o fullness_n of_o power_n peculiar_a to_o the_o supreme_a head_n then_o by_o your_o reason_n every_o pastor_n in_o his_o church_n every_o feeder_n in_o his_o flock_n be_v a_o supreme_a head_n no_o less_o than_o peter_n be_v among_o the_o apostle_n nay_o peter_n be_v not_o so_o by_o your_o reason_n neither_o for_o if_o to_o feed_v do_v signify_v a_o power_n most_o absolute_a and_o full_a as_o 10._o you_o say_v it_o do_v and_o that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n 7._o as_o you_o confess_v too_o it_o follow_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n and_o say_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v that_o charge_n to_o feed_v if_o all_o they_o have_v that_o charge_n to_o feed_v make_v nothing_o for_o peter_n supremacy_n wherefore_o this_o and_o other_o of_o the_o like_a knot_n which_o stapleton_n have_v seek_v and_o ●ound_v out_o in_o bulrush_n they_o do_v not_o grow_v in_o they_o by_o the_o workmanship_n of_o the_o creator_n man_n have_v make_v they_o and_o god_n will_v loose_v they_o hart._n this_o which_o you_o have_v say_v may_v seem_v to_o be_v some_o what_o towards_o the_o lose_n of_o they_o division_n if_o the_o scripture_n give_v not_o very_o clear_a evidence_n for_o proof_n of_o his_o supremacy_n as_o well_o elsewhere_o as_o here_o for_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n 22.31_o simon_n simon_n behold_v satan_n have_v desire_v you_o to_o winnow_v you_o as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n rainoldes_n will_v you_o be_v draw_v still_o of_o blood_n for_o what_o do_v either_o christ_n prayer_n for_o peter_n or_o the_o charge_n give_v he_o to_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n say_v more_o for_o his_o supremacy_n then_o the_o question_n do_v thou_o love_v i_o or_o the_o charge_n feed_v my_o sheep_n unless_o you_o press_v violent_o the_o word_n beyond_o their_o sense_n as_o your_o schoole-divines_a in_o their_o captious_a syllogism_n or_o rather_o sophism_n use_v to_o do_v hart._n such_o dregs_n as_o our_o 1._o canus_n term_v they_o of_o sophism_n bring_v into_o the_o school_n by_o man_n who_o be_v unworthe_o name_v schoole-divines_a be_v reprove_v by_o we_o as_o well_o as_o by_o you_o but_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v speak_v enough_o for_o peter_n prerogative_n without_o violence_n for_o 8._o they_o command_v he_o to_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n and_o his_o brethren_n be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o command_v he_o therefore_o to_o strengthen_v the_o apostle_n if_o to_o strengthen_v the_o apostle_n then_o must_v he_o be_v their_o supreme_a head_n wherefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n rainoldes_n and_o think_v you_o that_o christ_n mean_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v thy_o brethren_n hart._n who_o shall_v he_o mean_v if_o not_o they_o rainoldes_n all_o the_o faithful_a as_o i_o think_v for_o they_o have_v all_o one_o 1.17_o father_n the_o same_o that_o peter_n have_v and_o they_o be_v 3.7_o fellow_n heir_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o life_n with_o peter_n and_o peter_n himself_o strengthen_v they_o 1.10_o call_v they_o brethren_n so_o that_o in_o peter_n judgement_n christ_n seem_v to_o have_v mean_v by_o his_o brethren_n all_o the_o faithful_a pardon_v i_o if_o i_o be_v rather_o of_o his_o mind_n therein_o then_o of_o you_o hart._n as_o who_o say_v we_o deny_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v mean_v by_o his_o brethren_n 8._o we_o teach_v the_o same_o also_o yet_o that_o be_v true_a that_o i_o say_v for_o i_o trust_v the_o apostle_n be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a rainoldes_n they_o be_v so_o but_o then_o your_o reason_n of_o brethren_n have_v no_o more_o force_n then_o have_v the_o other_o of_o sheep_n nay_o it_o have_v less_o for_o what_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o strengthen_v hart._n to_o strengthen_v be_v to_o stay_v they_o up_o who_o do_v stand_v for_o the_o function_n of_o preach_v 10.14_o which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n engender_v faith_n in_o man_n have_v two_o special_a part_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o strengthen_v or_o as_o s._n paul_n speak_v 3.6_o to_o plant_v and_o to_o water_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o plant_v be_v to_o convert_v man_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o engraph_v they_o into_o he_o to_o strengthen_v and_o to_o water_n be_v to_o uphold_v they_o which_o be_v already_o faithful_a that_o they_o may_v persevere_v in_o it_o rainoldes_n then_o be_v the_o charge_n lesser_a to_o strenghthen_v the_o brethren_n then_o to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n for_o to_o feed_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o preach_v have_v two_o duty_n to_o raise_v up_o they_o that_o be_v fall_v to_o strengthen_v they_o that_o do_v stand_v wherefore_o if_o the_o supremacy_n be_v not_o give_v peter_n by_o the_o charge_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v give_v by_o a_o part_n of_o that_o charge_n to_o strengthen_v the_o brethren_n for_o as_o peter_n ought_v that_o duty_n to_o his_o brethren_n so_o do_v his_o brethren_n to_o he_o and_o 2.14_o paul_n perform_v it_o so_o do_v
persecution_n though_o they_o repent_v after_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o and_o thereupon_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o unclean_a also_o for_o that_o they_o receive_v into_o their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n upon_o repentance_n such_o as_o have_v fall_v against_o these_o novatians_n the_o firebrand_n of_o schism_n and_o dissension_n in_o the_o church_n s._n cyprian_n have_v write_v a_o notable_a treatise_n ecclesiae_fw-la touch_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o do_v instruct_v and_o exhort_v christian_n to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o be_v at_o concord_n among_o themselves_o and_o to_o win_v this_o of_o they_o by_o reason_n and_o persuasion_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o among_o the_o rest_n he_o bring_v sundry_a figure_n wherein_o be_v represent_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n the_o coat_n of_o christ_n the_o house_n of_o rahab_n the_o lamb_n of_o the_o passover_n so_o among_o the_o figure_n he_o place_v peter_n first_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o on_o this_o stone_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n &_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o geve_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o again_o feed_v my_o sheep_n for_o albeit_o christ_n say_v he_o give_v potestatem_fw-la equal_a power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whosoever_n sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v to_o they_o &_o whosoever_v sin_n y●_n retain_v they_o be_v retain_v yet_o to_o declare_v unity_n he_o dispose_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o original_n of_o that_o unity_n beginning_n of_o one_o no_o doubt_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v potestatis_fw-la endue_v with_o like_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o of_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n do_v come_v from_o unity_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o now_o this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a which_o by_o the_o former_a print_n be_v think_v to_o make_v rather_o for_o a_o equality_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o power_n than_o a_o supremacy_n of_o one_o as_o it_o do_v in_o deed_n be_v farse_v with_o such_o word_n in_o the_o roman_a cyprian_a that_o in_o show_v it_o make_v for_o peter_n supremacy_n and_o so_o for_o a_o supremacy_n in_o power_n like_o the_o pope_n 7._o as_o you_o teach_v man_n to_o gather_v of_o it_o for_o where_o it_o be_v in_o cyprian_a that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a both_o in_o honour_n and_o power_n unto_o peter_n but_o the_o beginning_n do_v come_v from_o unity_n the_o roman_a cyprian_a add_v these_o word_n datur_fw-la and_o the_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n where_o it_o be_v in_o cyprian_a that_o christ_n do_v dispose_v the_o original_n of_o unity_n begin_v from_o one_o the_o roman_a cyprian_a add_v con●●tuit_fw-la he_o appoint_v one_o chair_n and_o again_o where_o cyprian_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o the_o roman_a cyprian_a add_v una_fw-la and_o the_o chair_n to_o be_v one_o this_o be_v well_o to_o begin_v with_o that_o unto_o peter_n the_o primacy_n be_v give_v that_o christ_n appoint_v one_o chair_n and_o as_o the_o church_n must_v be_v one_o so_o the_o chair_n must_v be_v one_o yet_o because_o one_o chair_n in_o ecclesiae_fw-la cyprian_n language_n do_v make_v no_o more_o for_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n the_o cyprian_a of_o antwerp_n to_o help_v the_o matter_n forward_o do_v bring_v in_o peter_n chair_n and_o where_o it_o be_v in_o cyprian_a even_o in_o the_o roman_a print_n too_o he_o who_o withstand_v and_o resist_v the_o church_n do_v he_o trust_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o anwerp_n cyprian_n add_v deserit_fw-la he_o who_o forsake_v peter_n chair_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v do_v he_o trust_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n so_o whereas_o aforetime_o s._n cyprian_n show_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o equality_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o by_o good_a handle_n he_o show_v peter_n primacy_n and_o that_o by_o good_a expound_v be_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n for_o we_o must_v imagine_v that_o by_o peter_n chair_n be_v mean_v the_o pope_n chair_n which_o chair_n be_v forsake_v who_o be_v not_o obedient_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o confid●●_n gratian_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n the_o only_a difficulty_n and_o scruple_n that_o be_v leave_v to_o breed_v a_o doubt_n thereof_o in_o suspicious_a head_n be_v that_o clause_n of_o cyprian_a that_o christ_n give_v equal_a power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v endue_v with_o like_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o of_o power_n which_o word_n if_o you_o can_v handsome_o take_v away_o out_o of_o he_o in_o some_o new_a print_n and_o why_o not_o take_v away_o so_o few_o as_o well_o as_o add_v so_o many_o then_o will_v this_o be_v a_o pass_v fine_a place_n for_o you_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v presuppose_v your_o one_o chair_n to_o which_o all_o must_v be_v subject_a who_o will_v be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o by_o consequent_a be_v no_o right_a christian_n who_o stand_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n hart._n you_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v to_o lay_v unto_o our_o charge_n the_o corrupt_a of_o cyprian_a chief_o in_o those_o edition_n which_o be_v best_a and_o sound_a the_o roman_a of_o manutius_n and_o anwerp_n of_o pameliu●_n for_o pius_n the_o four_o a_o pope_n of_o worthy_a memory_n desirous_a quart_n that_o the_o father_n shall_v be_v set_v forth_o correct_v most_o perfect_o and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o spot_n send_v to_o venice_n for_o manutius_n a_o excellent_a famous_a printer_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o rome_n to_o do_v it_o and_o to_o furnish_v he_o the_o better_a with_o all_o thing_n necessary_a thereto_o he_o put_v four_o cardinal_n very_o wise_a and_o virtuous_a in_o trust_n with_o the_o work_n now_o for_o the_o correct_v and_o cleanse_v of_o cyprian_a special_o above_o the_o rest_n cardin._n singular_a care_n be_v take_v by_o cardinal_n borromaeus_n a_o copy_n be_v get_v of_o great_a antiquity_n from_o verona_n the_o exquisite_a diligence_n of_o learned_a man_n be_v use_v in_o it_o wherefore_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v add_v unto_o cyprian_n they_o do_v not_o add_v it_o rash_o or_o of_o their_o own_o head_n but_o with_o good_a advice_n upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o write_v copy_n which_o although_o they_o have_v not_o declare_v in_o particular_a yet_o may_v we_o gather_v it_o by_o canonicus_fw-la pamelius_n a_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o bruges_n and_o licentiat_fw-la of_o divinity_n by_o who_o the_o anwerp-cyprian_a be_v afterward_o set_v forth_o for_o eccles_n he_o do_v note_n that_o all_o the_o word_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o add_v by_o manutius_n in_o the_o romane-print_n he_o appoint_v one_o chair_n and_o the_o chair_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n be_v in_o a_o write_a copy_n of_o the_o cambron-abbey_n indiculo_fw-la which_o be_v the_o best_a of_o all_o the_o copy_n that_o he_o have_v yea_o those_o of_o peter_n primacy_n not_o only_o in_o that_o copy_n but_o in_o a_o other_o too_o which_o cardinal_n hosius_n occupy_v as_o for_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v add_v by_o himself_o in_o the_o print_n at_o anwerp_n he_o who_o forsake_v peter_n chair_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v do_v he_o trust_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n he_o note_v that_o they_o also_o be_v in_o the_o cambron-copie_n and_o confirm_v by_o ●athedram_fw-la gratian_n who_o have_v the_o same_o word_n and_o cit_v they_o with_o cyprian_n name_n whereby_o you_o may_v perceive_v that_o we_o have_v not_o corrupt_v those_o place_n of_o cyprian_a either_o in_o the_o roman-print_n or_o the_o antwerp_n we_o have_v correct_v rather_o that_o which_o be_v corrupt_v but_o i_o see_v the_o poet_n have_v say_v very_o true_o nothing_o be_v do_v so_o well_o but_o with_o evil_a speech_n a_o man_n may_v deprave_v it_o rainoldes_n and_o it_o be_v as_o true_o say_v by_o the_o orator_n nothing_o be_v do_v so_o evil_a but_o with_o fair_a colour_n a_o man_n may_v defend_v it_o the_o pope_n send_v for_o manutius_n to_o print_v the_o father_n correct_v he_o appoint_v four_o cardinal_n to_o see_v the_o work_n do_v cardinal_a borromaus_fw-la have_v singular_a care_n of_o cyprian_a
he_o agree_v not_o precise_o word_n for_o word_n with_o the_o cambron-copie_n now_o the_o cambron-copie_n what_o be_v it_o or_o whence_o come_v it_o that_o cyprian_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o father_n of_o such_o slip_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o it_o alone_o what_o if_o some_o do_v note_v they_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o fancy_n as_o student_n use_v to_o do_v what_o if_o some_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o text_n of_o error_n what_o if_o some_o of_o zeal_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v add_v they_o and_o why_o do_v not_o pamelius_n leave_v out_o the_o other_o word_n of_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o honour_n and_o power_n because_o the_o cambron_n copy_n want_v they_o as_o well_o as_o add_v these_o of_o peter_n primacy_n and_o chair_n because_o the_o cambron-copie_n have_v they_o do_v not_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o copy_n be_v unsound_a or_o at_o the_o least_o insufficient_a to_o force_v the_o change_n of_o a_o place_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n against_o the_o credit_n of_o so_o many_o both_o write_v book_n and_o print_v if_o other_o licentiate_n as_o learned_a as_o pamelius_n shall_v upon_o one_o copy_n as_o good_a as_o the_o cambron_n presume_v in_o all_o the_o father_n as_o he_o have_v in_o cyprian_a to_o add_v the_o like_a gloss_n for_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o opinion_n as_o these_o be_v for_o the_o chair_n and_o primacy_n of_o peter_n it_o will_v be_v high_a time_n for_o we_o to_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o permit_v the_o trial_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n wherefore_o although_o these_o matter_n seem_v never_o so_o small_a yet_o there_o may_v lie_v as_o much_o on_o they_o as_o concern_v the_o safety_n of_o our_o soul_n neither_o do_v i_o pick_v they_o as_o quarrel_n for_o pretence_n but_o i_o allege_v they_o as_o reason_n for_o proof_n that_o by_o the_o position_n of_o your_o own_o author_n we_o must_v deal_v with_o you_o not_o by_o their_o consent_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n only_o for_o he_o on_o who_o you_o ground_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n allow_v only_o scripture_n to_o convince_v those_o error_n which_o have_v increase_v long_o &_o wide_a because_o the_o length_n of_o time_n have_v give_v they_o occasion_n to_o steal_v away_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o poison_n spread_v far_o they_o endeavour_n to_o corrupt_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n your_o error_n of_o the_o papacy_n have_v spread_v far_o and_o grow_v long_o you_o have_v endeavour_v to_o corrupt_v the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n the_o forgery_n be_v plain_a in_o cyprian_a in_o cyrill_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o presumption_n be_v great_a that_o you_o have_v be_v as_o bold_a with_o other_o as_o with_o these_o for_o if_o thomas_n of_o aquine_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o it_o what_o may_v be_v think_v of_o such_o as_o be_v more_o ambitious_a and_o if_o manutius_n deal_v so_o with_o cyprian_a in_o card._n who_o he_o seek_v most_o credit_n what_o do_v his_o sirlet_n ten_o year_n labour_n in_o set_v forth_o the_o rest_n and_o if_o papist_n dare_v this_o in_o the_o light_n of_o print_v what_o may_v we_o fear_v they_o do_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o writing_n book_n and_o if_o the_o roman_a print_n be_v follow_v at_o anwerp_n the_o anwerp_n at_o ni●ellium_fw-la paris_n the_o paris_n otherwhere_a perhaps_o and_o the_o new_a the_o worser_o and_o the_o worst_a account_v best_a by_o such_o as_o d._n 15._o stapleton_n and_o testimony_n allege_v thence_o as_o authentical_a how_o much_o likely_a be_v it_o that_o when_o they_o write_v copy_n in_o monastery_n and_o abbey_n they_o follow_v one_o another_o with_o lesser_a shame_n and_o great_a looseness_n and_o so_o do_v proceed_v from_o good_a to_o evil_n from_o evil_a to_o worse_o and_o author_n of_o that_o age_n do_v most_o approve_v those_o copy_n which_o make_v for_o their_o advantage_n most_o and_o bring_v authority_n out_o of_o they_o to_o conclude_v therefore_o even_o by_o his_o judgement_n to_o who_o you_o appeal_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o that_o golden_a book_n against_o the_o profane_a innovation_n of_o all_o heresy_n the_o touchstone_n by_o the_o which_o our_o controversy_n must_v be_v try_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o word_n of_o man_n not_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o this_o i_o may_v protest_v i_o speak_v not_o of_o fear_n as_o though_o the_o father_n all_o hold_v with_o you_o against_o we_o but_o of_o conscience_n that_o i_o may_v yield_v due_a glory_n to_o god_n due_a reverence_n to_o his_o word_n for_o let_v such_o forgery_n as_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v set_v apart_o division_n and_o what_o have_v all_o the_o father_n nay_o what_o have_v any_o of_o they_o to_o prove_v the_o pretend_a supremacy_n of_o peter_n hart._n the_o very_a same_o father_n who_o word_n i_o allege_v 13._o before_o and_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v their_o own_o not_o counterfeit_v geve_v peter_n the_o supremacy_n which_o you_o call_v pretend_v for_o s._n aug._n jerom_n say_v of_o he_o peter_n be_v of_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o paul_n write_v then_o after_o three_o year_n and_o so_o forth_o and_o s._n 1._o austin_n affirm_v that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v conspicuous_a and_o preeminent_a with_o excellent_a grace_n in_o peter_n and_o chrysostome_n call_v he_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o chief_a and_o top_n of_o the_o company_n and_o he_o be_v name_v by_o 1._o theodoret_n 87._o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o prince_n which_o title_n also_o be_v give_v he_o by_o all_o antiquity_n whereto_o 2._o i_o may_v add_v that_o anchorat_n epiphanius_n term_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o you_o will_v say_v the_o high_a of_o the_o apostle_n and_o johannem_fw-la s._n austin_n yet_o far_o their_o head_n &_o their_o precedent_n &_o the_o first_o of_o they_o which_o preeminence_n he_o proove_v also_o out_o of_o s._n 1._o cyprian_n who_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v choose_v peter_n first_o &_o s._n ●_o jerom_n teach_v that_o peter_n be_v choose_v one_o among_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n be_v full_a of_o such_o say_n but_o they_o be_v all_o to_o this_o effect_n and_o therefore_o these_o few_o may_v serve_v to_o show_v their_o judgement_n rainoldes_n these_o say_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o father_n do_v touch_v three_o prerogative_n which_o they_o give_v to_o peter_n the_o first_o of_o authority_n the_o second_o of_o primacy_n the_o three_o of_o principality_n but_o none_o of_o they_o all_o do_v prove_v the_o supremacy_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o peter_n and_o mean_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o by_o tha●_n supremacy_n be_v signify_v the_o selnes_n of_o ecclesiastical_a or_o rather_o papal_a power_n even_o a_o power_n sovereign_a of_o govern_v the_o church_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o all_o point_n &_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n as_o ●_o you_o declare_v be_v it_o not_o hart._n it_o be_v so_o what_o then_o rainoldes_n but_o none_o of_o the_o say_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o father_n do_v geve_v this_o sovereign_a power_n to_o peter_n therefore_o they_o prove_v not_o his_o pretend_a supremacy_n hart._n they_o geve_v it_o he_o all_o rainoldes_n i_o will_v show_v the_o contrary_n and_o to_o speak_v in_o order_n of_o the_o three_o prerogative_n which_o by_o they_o be_v give_v he_o the_o first_o out_o of_o jerom_n that_o peter_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n be_v nothing_o to_o your_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o since_o the_o supremacy_n do_v note_v a_o sovereign_a power_n the_o question_n be_v of_o power_n and_o not_o of_o authority_n hart._n as_o who_o say_v that_o power_n and_o authority_n do_v differ_v so_o much_o one_o from_o the_o other_o rainoldes_n much._n for_o power_n import_v a_o right_a of_o rule_n and_o government_n which_o the_o superior_n have_v over_o their_o inferior_n for_o the_o good_a order_n of_o mankind_n as_o 13.1_o prince_n over_o subject_n 13.10_o pastor_n over_o flock_n 8.9_o master_n over_o servant_n 11.10_o husband_n over_o wife_n by_o authority_n be_v mean_v estimation_n and_o credit_n a_o good_a opinion_n of_o man_n for_o that_o which_o we_o account_v worthy_a to_o be_v esteem_v for_o they_o of_o who_o we_o think_v so_o well_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o virtue_n or_o wisdom_n or_o state_n or_o other_o quality_n that_o we_o will_v follow_v they_o as_o author_n in_o our_o do_n our_o judgement_n fact_n or_o word_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o credit_n and_o authority_n with_o us._n and_o this_o a_o inferior_a may_v have_v with_o his_o superior_a as_o 16.23_o
achithophel_n a_o counsellor_n have_v such_o authority_n with_o his_o prince_n that_o his_o counsel_n be_v regard_v as_o a_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o 5.40_o gamaliel_n a_o pharise_n have_v such_o authority_n with_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o whole_a assembly_n do_v yield_v to_o his_o advice_n and_o as_o it_o be_v obey_v he_o wherefore_o the_o authority_n which_o jerom_n say_v that_o peter_n have_v do_v not_o prove_v a_o power_n much_o less_o a_o supremacy_n hart._n yet_o oftentimes_o authority_n be_v take_v for_o the_o same_o that_o power_n as_o when_o a_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o appointment_n and_o order_n of_o the_o magistrate_n we_o be_v w●nt_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o authority_n rainoldes_n true_a because_o power_n be_v one_o of_o those_o quality_n which_o procure_v authority_n the_o great_a authority_n the_o better_a that_o the_o power_n be_v use_v and_o so_o i_o join_v power_n and_o authority_n together_o 1._o when_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o key_n that_o christ_n do_v geve_v to_o peter_n but_o although_o the_o word_n be_v take_v for_o the_o same_o in_o a_o it_o figurative_a kind_n of_o speech_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o affinity_n which_o be_v between_o the_o thing_n yet_o as_o the_o thing_n differ_v and_o the_o word_n be_v use_v for_o they_o as_o different_a proper_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o authority_n may_v be_v without_o power_n and_o a_o inferior_a in_o power_n may_v be_v superior_a in_o authority_n so_o est_fw-la tully_n when_o he_o tell_v the_o senator_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o geve_v authority_n to_o cesar_n and_o the_o rest_n against_o antony_n he_o mean_v by_o authority_n lawful_a power_n and_o right_a to_o deal_v against_o he_o as_o against_o a_o enemy_n but_o otherwhere_o felicitas_fw-la entreat_v of_o four_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o general_n of_o a_o army_n skill_n virtue_n authority_n felicity_n he_o mean_v not_o lawful_a power_n by_o authority_n but_o estimation_n that_o a_o general_n must_v be_v honourable_o think_v of_o by_o friend_n and_o foe_n the_o difference_n between_o they_o he_o show_v where_o pisonem_fw-la he_o say_v that_o metellus_n autoritate_fw-la a_o private_a man_n though_o choose_v consul_n for_o the_o year_n follow_v forbid_v certain_a play_n when_o a_o officer_n have_v allow_v they_o and_o that_o which_o he_o can_v not_o yet_o obtain_v by_o power_n he_o do_v obtain_v by_o authority_n hart._n the_o thing_n do_v differ_v i_o grant_v but_o see_v that_o the_o name_n of_o authority_n be_v use_v as_o well_o for_o power_n sometime_o as_o for_o estimation_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v take_v in_o s._n jeroms_n word_n rather_o for_o estimation_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o then_o for_o power_n as_o i_o rainoldes_n because_o the_o point_n which_o jerom_n do_v thereupon_o infer_v can_v agree_v to_o power_n but_o to_o estimation_n yea_o this_o word_n itself_o be_v express_v by_o he_o and_z show_v that_o he_o mean_v it_o for_o he_o say_v that_o paul_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o confer_v of_o the_o gospel_n with_o they_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d esteem_v by_o who_o he_o mean_v apostolorum_fw-la peter_n and_o other_o apostle_n even_o they_o who_o 〈◊〉_d paul_n name_v and_o note_v their_o estimation_n as_o himself_o expound_v it_o james_n and_o peter_n and_o john_n who_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v pillar_n wherefore_o albeit_o jerom_o speak_v hardly_o of_o paul_n that_o he_o have_v not_o have_v security_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unless_o it_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o these_o yet_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o give_v peter_n he_o give_v other_o apostle_n james_n and_o john_n with_o he_o and_o therefore_o a_o preeminence_n in_o estimation_n not_o in_o power_n not_o in_o supremacy_n but_o in_o credit_n for_o if_o by_o authority_n he_o mean_v supreme_a power_n james_n and_o john_n shall_v have_v it_o over_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n have_v but_o they_o you_o say_v be_v equal_a in_o power_n to_o the_o rest_n and_o inferior_a to_o peter_n then_o jerom_n by_o authority_n which_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n mean_v not_o the_o supremacy_n hart._n the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n do_v prove_v it_o more_o forcible_o which_o be_v the_o next_o prerogative_n and_o that_o be_v give_v to_o he_o not_o only_o by_o s._n austin_n but_o also_o by_o s._n cyprian_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v rainoldes_n what_o need_v you_o to_o allege_v i_o s._n austin_n and_o s._n cyprian_n do_v i_o deny_v his_o primacy_n hart._n why_o do_v you_o not_o deny_v it_o rainoldes_n if_o i_o do_v let_v i_o be_v smite_v not_o with_o the_o blunt_a weapon_n of_o the_o word_n of_o man_n for_o so_o i_o may_v just_o term_v they_o in_o this_o comparison_n but_o with_o the_o sharp_a two-edged_a sword_n of_o god_n word_n for_o 10.2_o it_o be_v write_v in_o s._n matthewes_n gospel_n these_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n the_o first_o be_v simon_n call_v peter_n now_o if_o he_o be_v the_o first_o then_o he_o have_v the_o primacy_n for_o although_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o so_o plain_a in_o english_a because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o fit_a word_n derive_v from_o our_o english_a first_o as_o primatus_fw-la primacy_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o primus_fw-la first_o in_o latin_a yet_o they_o who_o know_v reason_n will_v never_o deny_v but_o that_o he_o that_o be_v first_o have_v the_o first●ship_n if_o i_o may_v speak_v so_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o primacy_n but_o this_o be_v such_o a_o primacy_n as_o a_o foreman_n of_o the_o quest_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v in_o jury_n not_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n as_o over_o inferior_n but_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n as_o among_o equal_n hart._n the_o primacy_n of_o order_n be_v a_o colourable_a show_n whereby_o you_o may_v avoid_v s._n matthew_n but_o austin_n and_o cyprian_n can_v be_v so_o avoid_v for_o their_o word_n be_v witness_n they_o mean_v a_o far_a primacy_n and_o what_o shall_v that_o be_v but_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n which_o because_o they_o learn_v as_o it_o be_v likely_a out_o of_o s._n matthew_n thereof_o do_v i_o gather_v that_o s._n matthew_n mean_v a_o primacy_n of_o power_n and_o not_o of_o order_n only_o rainoldes_n and_o because_o s._n matthew_n as_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a mean_v not_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n to_o one_o there_o where_o 10.5_o he_o show_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o same_o power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n thereof_o do_v i_o gather_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n only_o not_o of_o power_n but_o austin_n and_o cyprian_n mean_v a_o far_a primacy_n you_o say_v perhaps_o they_o do_v therefore_o a_o primacy_n in_o power_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v nay_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o mean_v it_o not_o of_o power_n 1._o for_o austin_n do_v build_v it_o upon_o the_o ground_n of_o cyprian_a and_o eccles_n cyprian_n do_v teach_v that_o christ_n give_v omnibus_fw-la equal_a power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o truth_n be_v they_o mean_v a_o primacy_n in_o call_v to_o weet_fw-mi that_o elegit_fw-la the_o lord_n do_v choose_v peter_n first_o as_o quintum_fw-la cyprian_n do_v speak_v express_o and_o whether_o s._n matthew_n regard_v this_o also_o in_o that_o he_o number_v peter_n first_o i_o can_v not_o define_v but_o whether_o he_o do_v or_o no_o it_o be_v no_o far_a primacy_n than_o i_o grant_v you_o by_o the_o foreman_n of_o the_o quest_n who_o be_v call_v first_o as_o he_o be_v reckon_v fi●st_n and_o so_o both_o in_o order_n and_o calling_n have_v a_o primacy_n which_o he_o have_v not_o in_o power_n hart._n a_o primacy_n in_o call_v nay_o yet_o you_o have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v cleaved_a still_o to_o the_o primacy_n of_o order_n for_o peter_n in_o order_n be_v the_o first_o in_o deed_n and_o so_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o he_o may_v have_v be_v though_o he_o have_v be_v equal_a in_o power_n to_o his_o brethren_n but_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o in_o call_v for_o s._n 12._o ambrose_n say_v andrew_n first_o follow_v our_o saviour_n before_o peter_n and_o yet_o andrew_n receive_v not_o the_o primacy_n but_o peter_n and_o s._n 1._o augustine_n word_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v conspicuous_a and_o preeminent_a with_o excellent_a grace_n in_o peter_n do_v plain_o import_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o primacy_n not_o in_o call_v but_o preeminence_n rainoldes_n you_o say_v that_o peter_n have_v not_o a_o primacy_n in_o call_v for_o s._n ambrose_n say_v so_o what_o if_o i_o shall_v answer_v he_o have_v a_o primacy_n in_o call_v for_o s._n cyprian_n say_v so_o or_o to_o help_v s._n cyprian_n if_o he_o have_v small_a credit_n with_o you_o for_o s._n 18._o gregory_n say_v so_o vocatus_fw-la peter_n be_v call_v to_o the_o apostleship_n first_o but_o there_o be_v no_o dissension_n between_o they_o and_o ambrose_n if_o
all_o their_o word_n be_v weigh_v for_o ambrose_n say_v that_o andrew_n do_v first_o follow_v christ_n and_o they_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v call_v first_o of_o christ._n the_o truth_n of_o both_o which_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o scripture_n for_o 40._o andrew_n follow_v christ_n before_o peter_n know_v he_o and_o he_o bring_v peter_n unto_o christ._n but_o 42._o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n 1._o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n wherein_o he_o mean_v he_o the_o apostleship_n before_o he_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o the_o apostleship_n to_o andrew_n and_o so_o do_v ambrose_n seem_v himself_o to_o expound_v his_o meaning_n otherwhere_o affirm_v of_o peter_n that_o ecclesiarum_fw-la he_o be_v the_o first_o among_o the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o he_o give_v peter_n the_o primacy_n in_o be_v call_v to_o the_o apostleship_n though_o he_o give_v a_o primacy_n in_o discipleship_n as_o it_o be_v i_o mean_v in_o follow_v christ_n to_o andrew_n as_o for_o s._n augustine_n word_n which_o you_o say_v import_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o primacy_n notin_n call_v but_o preeminence_n you_o shall_v have_v rather_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o primacy_n in_o call_v &_o preeminence_n both_o for_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n he_o mean_v a_o primacy_n in_o call_v but_o your_o friend_n who_o dismember_v the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n do_v stand_v in_o your_o light_n that_o you_o can_v not_o see_v it_o for_o as_o 13._o stapleton_n do_v cut_v out_o apostle_n the_o former_a word_n of_o ambrose_n that_o peter_n may_v be_v think_v the_o only_a man_n who_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n not_o the_o first_o of_o they_o who_o have_v it_o so_o have_v torrensis_n cut_v of_o the_o late_a word_n of_o austin_n that_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n may_v be_v think_v a_o primacy_n in_o power_n not_o in_o call_v or_o if_o in_o call_v in_o power_n too_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v conspicuous_a and_o praeeminent_a with_o excellent_a grace_n in_o the_o apostle_n peter_n thus_o say_v torrensis_n out_o of_o austin_n and_o these_o be_v 1._o augustine_n word_n but_o his_o word_n say_v far_o that_o peter_n the_o apostle_n in_o who_o that_o grace_n and_o primacy_n be_v so_o preeminent_a correctum_fw-la be_v correct_v by_o paul_n a_o late_a apostle_n wherein_o name_v paul_n he_o late_a apostle_n as_o make_v apostle_n after_o peter_n in_o time_n he_o show_v 1._o that_o of_o the_o other_o side_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o primacy_n that_o peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n in_o time_n before_o paul_n as_o ambrose_n say_v of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o be_v before_o paul_n tempore_fw-la not_o in_o dignity_n but_o in_o time_n and_o quintum_fw-la cyprian_a who_o austin_n allege_v and_o follow_v do_v use_v the_o word_n oportere_fw-la primacy_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n of_o be_v first_o in_o time_n also_o wherefore_o the_o father_n prove_v not_o your_o supremacy_n by_o give_v the_o prerogative_n of_o primacy_n to_o peter_n 12._o hart._n the_o bare_a name_n of_o primacy_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o prove_v it_o but_o some_o by_o that_o name_n have_v mean_v a_o supremacy_n and_o sure_o the_o preeminence_n with_o excellent_a grace_n which_o austin_n give_v peter_n do_v note_v a_o high_a primacy_n then_o either_o of_o order_n or_o call_v or_o time_n though_o it_o with_o all_o too_o rainoldes_n it_o do_v so_o i_o grant_v and_o i_o note_v that_o in_o the_o three_o prerogative_n which_o the_o father_n give_v he_o namely_o principality_n for_o 1._o austin_n have_v join_v his_o primacy_n and_o preeminence_n with_o excellent_a grace_n together_o do_v term_v they_o both_o in_o one_o apostolatus_fw-la the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n which_o if_o some_o have_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o primacy_n as_o perhaps_o they_o have_v they_o may_v because_o the_o word_n be_v borrow_v often_o time_n from_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o first_o in_o order_n to_o signify_v the_o chief_a in_o quality_n and_o so_o when_o 124._o austin_n say_v that_o peter_n be_v apostolus_fw-la a_o man_n by_o nature_n a_o christian_a by_o grace_n by_o more_o abundant_a grace_n a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n yea_o the_o first_o apostle_n by_o the_o first_o apostle_n he_o mean_v the_o chief_a apostle_n the_o principality_n by_o the_o primacy_n but_o this_o principality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n this_o preeminence_n of_o the_o primacy_n with_o grace_n so_o excellent_a and_o abundant_a come_v no_o near_a unto_o your_o supremacy_n then_o do_v the_o primacy_n of_o order_n for_o to_o be_v chief_a in_o grace_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v chief_a in_o power_n a_o other_o hart._n and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a grace_n to_o be_v chief_a in_o power_n rainoldes_n as_o you_o say_v the_o great_a grace_n that_o your_o pope_n of_o long_a time_n have_v fight_v for_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o grace_n and_o power_n which_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la lawyer_n have_v observe_v well_o as_o it_o behove_v they_o to_o do_v for_o many_o doctor_n have_v be_v endue_v with_o great_a spiritus_fw-la grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o sundry_a pope_n say_v gratian_n yet_o in_o the_o decide_n of_o controversy_n and_o cause_n the_o writing_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v of_o less_o authority_n than_o the_o pope_n decree_n why_o because_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o potestate_fw-la power_n above_o they_o but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o doctor_n when_o the_o mean_a christian_n may_v pass_v the_o pope_n in_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o cardinal_n ●2_n turrecremata_fw-la who_o handle_v the_o question_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n whether_o of_o they_o be_v great_a when_o he_o have_v set_v down_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o adversary_n that_o the_o church_n be_v great_a because_o it_o be_v the_o body_n the_o pope_n a_o member_n of_o it_o and_o the_o whole_a must_v needs_o be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n he_o answer_v thereto_o that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n simple_o to_o weet_v virtutum_fw-la in_o perfection_n of_o grace_n and_o amplenes_n of_o virtue_n papa_n for_o even_o a_o old_a woman_n may_v in_o this_o sort_n be_v perfiter_n and_o great_a than_o the_o pope_n himself_o but_o iurisdictionis_fw-la in_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n he_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v great_a wherefore_o if_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n do_v stand_v in_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o a_o woman_n may_v be_v above_o he_o in_o grace_n then_o peter_n may_v excel_v with_o the_o preeminence_n of_o grace_n as_o austin_n say_v he_o do_v and_o yet_o not_o excel_v in_o supremacy_n of_o power_n which_o you_o conclude_v of_o it_o else_o you_o must_v take_v the_o supremacy_n from_o peter_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n unless_o you_o you_o will_v deny_v that_o she_o excel_v he_o in_o grace_n hart._n i_o will_v not_o deny_v it_o neither_o do_v i_o mean_a to_o prove_v the_o supremacy_n by_o the_o preeminence_n of_o grace_n alone_z in_o peter_n but_o by_o the_o preeminence_n of_o so_o excellent_a grace_n concur_v with_o the_o primacy_n whereto_o because_o you_o think_v these_o privilege_n touch_v by_o austin_n do_v not_o prove_v it_o the_o title_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o vicar_n all_o antiquity_n geve_v he_o may_v add_v weight_n and_o strength_n rainoldes_n which_o all_o antiquity_n geve_v he_o that_o speech_n be_v too_o lavish_v beside_o that_o conclusion_n some_o of_o they_o who_o geve_v it_o to_o he_o geve_v it_o to_o paul_n also_o but_o suppose_v that_o all_o and_o to_o he_o only_o what_o be_v there_o employ_v more_o in_o this_o title_n than_o i_o have_v grant_v you_o already_o for_o must_v he_o not_o be_v needs_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o who_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n be_v allow_v and_o if_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n infer_v not_o your_o supremacy_n can_v you_o infer_v a_o supreme_a head_n by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o name_n of_o prince_n perhaps_o do_v deceive_v you_o or_o you_o deceive_v other_o by_o it_o for_o our_o english_a tongue_n do_v use_v it_o to_o note_v a_o sovereign_a power_n in_o government_n as_o 26.10_o the_o prince_n of_o juda_n 9_o the_o prince_n of_o israel_n ●5_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v name_v in_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o father_n use_v it_o after_o the_o latin_a phrase_n for_o chief_a and_o most_o excellent_a as_o plato_n be_v name_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o philosopher_n as_o plato_n say_v fuit_fw-la jerom_n be_v prince_n of_o the_o philosopher_n so_o be_v peter_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o this_o be_v all_o you_o may_v conclude_v of_o it_o that_o peter_n do_v excel_v among_o the_o apostle_n for_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o grace_n
all_o equal_o wherefore_o by_o jeroms_n judgement_n peter_n be_v not_o over_o the_o apostle_n in_o power_n if_o not_o in_o power_n &_o yet_o in_o part_n of_o government_n in_o what_o but_o in_o that_o preeminence_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o s._n jerom_n therefore_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v appoint_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v mean_v that_o preeminence_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o a_o soveraintie_n above_o they_o hart._n the_o word_n of_o s._n jerom_n do_v speak_v somewhat_o too_o liberal_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o they_o all_o equal_o and_o as_o d._n 7._o stapleton_n note_v very_o well_o habet_fw-la the_o distinction_n touch_v thing_n write_v by_o the_o father_n some_o by_o way_n of_o doctrine_n and_o some_o of_o contention_n be_v verify_v in_o they_o for_o here_o by_o occasion_n that_o he_o reason_v against_o jovinian_a who_o allege_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o virginity_n that_o christ_n prefer_v peter_n a_o marry_a man_n before_o the_o rest_n he_o do_v lessen_v and_o extenuate_v the_o authority_n of_o peter_n as_o far_o as_o truth_n do_v give_v he_o leave_v make_v the_o rest_n equal_a to_o he_o for_o the_o apostleship_n yet_o affirm_v plain_o that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o rest_n rainoldes_n jerom_o write_v many_o thing_n in_o deed_n against_o jovinian_a by_o way_n of_o contention_n rather_o then_o of_o doctrine_n to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o marriage_n in_o so_o much_o that_o jovinian_a be_v therefore_o reprove_v by_o some_o himself_o excuse_v it_o that_o he_o do_v rather_o strive_v they_o teach_v and_o pamm_n pammachius_n a_o learned_a gentleman_n his_o friend_n do_v suppress_v the_o copy_n and_o wish_v they_o to_o be_v conceal_v till_o he_o have_v correct_v they_o but_o neither_o be_v this_o place_n so_o reprove_v by_o they_o or_o excuse_v by_o he_o for_o aught_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o his_o apology_n nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v note_v as_o savour_v more_o of_o heat_n than_o truth_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n yea_o stapleton_n who_o cover_v it_o with_o this_o distinction_n confess_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o at_o unaware_o for_o he_o say_v that_o autoritatem_fw-la jerom_n do_v lessen_v and_o extenuate_v the_o authority_n of_o peter_n as_o far_o as_o truth_n do_v give_v he_o leave_v whereof_o it_o ensue_v that_o it_o be_v no_o untruth_n to_o say_v as_o jerom_n do_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a power_n with_o peter_n the_o name_n of_o head_n therefore_o which_o jerom_n give_v he_o with_o the_o same_o breath_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n import_v a_o sovereign_a power_n over_o the_o apostles_n unless_o you_o will_v make_v he_o so_o absurd_a and_o brainesicke_a as_o that_o he_o shall_v say_v though_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v sovereign_a of_o the_o rest_n but_o they_o have_v equal_a power_n all_o yet_o be_v one_o of_o they_o above_o the_o rest_n in_o power_n and_o have_v the_o soverain-headship_a of_o they_o hart._n wel._n howsoever_o you_o handle_v jeroms_n word_n he_o say_v in_o flat_a term_n that_o which_o you_o deny_v and_o therefore_o he_o make_v against_o you_o with_o us._n rainoldes_n in_o what_o point_n or_o how_o hart._n you_o deny_v that_o peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n jerom_n say_v he_o be_v peter_n be_v not_o head_n and_o peter_n be_v head_n be_v there_o not_o a_o contradiction_n between_o your_o word_n and_o he_o rainoldes_n no_o more_o then_o between_o the_o word_n of_o john_n and_o christ_n christ_n say_v of_o john_n baptist_n 11.14_o this_o be_v elias_n john_n baptist_n say_v of_o himself_o 1.21_o i_o be_o not_o elias_n john_n baptist_n be_v elias_n and_o john_n baptist_n be_v not_o elias_n be_v there_o not_o a_o contradiction_n between_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o john_n hart._n no._n for_o christ_n mean_v one_o way_n and_o john_n baptist_n a_o other_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v elias_n in_o spirit_n as_o come_v 1.17_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n john_n baptist_n that_o he_o be_v not_o elias_n in_o person_n which_o the_o pharisee_n mean_v rainoldes_n you_o have_v answer_v well_o so_o jerom_n mean_v one_o way_n and_o i_o a_o other_o jerom_n that_o he_o be_v head_n in_o a_o preeminence_n of_o government_n as_o moderate_v the_o action_n in_o assembly_n of_o the_o apostle_n ay_o that_o he_o be_v not_o head_n in_o soveraintie_n of_o power_n which_o the_o papist_n mean_v and_o thus_o to_o conclude_v you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o father_n who_o you_o allege_v for_o peter_n some_o give_v he_o a_o prerogative_n of_o authority_n some_o of_o primacy_n some_o of_o principality_n but_o none_o of_o your_o supremacy_n for_o your_o supremacy_n do_v consist_v in_o power_n and_o they_o give_v equal_a power_n to_o peter_n with_o the_o rest_n hart._n equal_a power_n i_o grant_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o apostleship_n but_o not_o of_o pastoral_a charge_n for_o peter_n be_v over_o they_o in_o that_o even_o as_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o bishop_n and_o so_o etc._n we_o do_v expound_v the_o word_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n jerom_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n who_o give_v equal_a power_n to_o the_o apostle_n with_o peter_n rainoldes_n yet_o more_o of_o these_o colewort_n i_o have_v prove_v 1._o already_o that_o peter_n pastoral_a charge_n and_o his_o apostleship_n be_v all_o one_o and_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v equal_a to_o he_o in_o the_o apostleship_n the_o be_v in_o pastoral_a charge_n too_o but_o if_o no_o other_o reason_n will_v put_v you_o to_o silence_n the_o pope_n own_o authority_n may_v force_v you_o to_o it_o here_o for_o in_o the_o cyprian_a set_v forth_o by_o he_o at_o rome_n manutio_n he_o note_v it_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o whereas_o cyprian_n say_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a power_n with_o peter_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v transmit_v of_o the_o equality_n of_o apostleship_n which_o cease_v when_o the_o apostle_n die_v and_o pass_v not_o over_o unto_o bishop_n the_o drift_n of_o which_o note_n impli_v a_o distinction_n of_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n that_o it_o be_v not_o with_o bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o apostle_n in_o respect_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o do_v carry_v with_o it_o a_o check_n of_o your_o opinion_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n underling_n to_o peter_n as_o bishop_n to_o the_o pope_n hart._n you_o know_v not_o who_o make_v that_o note_n in_o the_o roman_a cyprian_a for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n name_n to_o it_o but_o if_o the_o pope_n either_o make_v it_o himself_o or_o allow_v of_o it_o be_v make_v by_o other_o to_o who_o he_o do_v commit_v that_o charge_n he_o set_v down_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n his_o own_o opinion_n which_o they_o who_o listen_v may_v follow_v but_o this_o be_v my_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o and_o to_o that_o i_o stand_v rainoldes_n i_o be_o glad_a you_o think_v not_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v at_o least_o in_o one_o point_n god_n grant_v that_o you_o may_v come_v forward_o in_o the_o rest_n to_o dissent_v from_o he_o not_o in_o this_o one_o point_n alone_o but_o in_o many_o howbeit_o whether_o he_o or_o other_o make_v that_o note_n they_o set_v it_o forth_o with_o great_a authority_n and_o privilege_n then_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n fancy_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o they_o will_v have_v grant_v so_o much_o to_o the_o apostle_n unless_o the_o truth_n have_v wring_v it_o from_o they_o let_v your_o righteousness_n m._n hart_n if_o not_o exceed_v yet_o match_v the_o righteousness_n of_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o yield_v to_o this_o conclusion_n which_o rise_v of_o our_o conference_n that_o peter_n be_v not_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o you_o do_v take_v the_o name_n of_o head_n hart._n you_o shall_v conclude_v yourself_o alone_o so_o for_o i_o for_o i_o do_v protest_v that_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o nor_o mind_n to_o yield_v unto_o it_o the_o six_o chapter_n the_o two_o main_a ground_n on_o which_o the_o supremacy_n usurp_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v lie_v the_o former_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o bishop_n over_o all_o in_o earth_n 1_o because_o christ_n say_v there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o pastor_n 2_o and_o among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v one_o judge_n and_o high_a priest_n the_o late_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o one_o bishop_n 3_o because_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o some_o say_v 4_o and_o the_o pope_n succeed_v peter_n both_o examine_v and_o show_v to_o fail_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n rainoldes_n division_n then_o 11.19_o wisdom_n must_v be_v content_a to_o be_v justify_v of_o her_o child_n howbeit_o god_n be_v able_a to_o change_v your_o hart_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o as_o
in_o the_o gospel_n 21.29_o he_o who_o say_v he_o will_v not_o go_v into_o the_o vineyard_n repent_v afterward_o and_o go_v so_o you_o may_v yield_v to_o this_o on_o better_a advice_n to_o which_o you_o say_v you_o will_v not_o yield_v though_o if_o your_o opinion_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v true_a it_o prove_v not_o your_o title_n to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o principal_a point_n in_o question_n which_o you_o claim_v thereby_o for_o let_v we_o fain_o that_o peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n how_o follow_v it_o thereof_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n hart._n it_o follow_v by_o 1._o the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o reason_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o power_n over_o bishop_n that_o he_o have_v over_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o peter_n power_n over_o the_o apostle_n do_v reach_v unto_o the_o whole_a flock_n both_o of_o the_o sheep_n and_o the_o lamb_n then_o must_v the_o same_o power_n of_o his_o successor_n over_o bishop_n reach_n by_o like_a reason_n unto_o the_o same_o flock_n and_o so_o to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n but_o how_o do_v you_o prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succéede_v peter_n in_o his_o power_n hart._n because_o that_o the_o power_n commit_v to_o peter_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o peter_n for_o this_o have_v not_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n upon_o who_o it_o lay_v to_o provide_v for_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o ●●_o austin_n show_v he_o do_v think_v not_o say_v he_o to_o the_o church_n think_v not_o thyself_o forsake_v because_o thou_o see_v not_o peter_n because_o thou_o see_v not_o paul_n because_o thou_o see_v not_o they_o by_o who_o thou_o be_v beget_v of_o thy_o offspring_n there_o be_v grow_v unto_o thou_o a_o fatherhood_n in_o steed_n of_o thy_o father_n child_n be_v bear_v unto_o thou_o rainoldes_n the_o goodness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n provide_v for_o his_o church_n as_o s._n 4.11_o paul_n witness_v by_o give_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n not_o one_o to_o the_o whole_a but_o many_o to_o the_o several_a part_n of_o his_o church_n for_o they_o who_o christ_n have_v choose_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o ordinary_a feed_n of_o his_o flock_n to_o instruct_v his_o people_n and_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o life_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v name_v in_o the_o scripture_n sometime_o 5.1_o elder_n of_o their_o age_n sometime_o 5.2_o bishop_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o he_o have_v take_v order_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o word_n that_o 1.5_o such_o shall_v be_v appoint_v in_o every_o church_n through_o every_o city_n this_o be_v it_o that_o austin_n regard_v when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o forsake_v although_o she_o see_v not_o the_o apostle_n consider_v that_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o apostle_n she_o have_v bishop_n for_o 44._o by_o the_o name_n of_o father_n he_o mean_v the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o child_n bishop_n in_o steed_n of_o thy_o father_n child_n be_v bear_v unto_o thou_o which_o how_o it_o may_v serve_v your_o purpose_n i_o see_v not_o unless_o perhaps_o you_o mean_v that_o among_o those_o child_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v heir_n as_o elder_a and_o bishop_n of_o other_o city_n shall_v be_v handle_v all_o like_o young_a brethren_n but_o austin_n say_v not_o so_o hart._n it_o be_v prove_v by_o austin_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n provide_v for_o his_o church_n and_o this_o i_o grant_v he_o do_v by_o give_v several_a pastor_n unto_o several_a flock_n but_o so_o that_o he_o commit_v the_o charge_n of_o they_o all_o to_o one_o supreme_a pastor_n which_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rainoldes_n thus_o i_o hear_v you_o say_v but_o i_o have_v rather_o hear_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n hart._n you_o shall_v hear_v it_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o 10.16_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o shepherd_n or_o as_o we_o translate_v it_o one_o fold_n and_o one_o pastor_n 15._o whereof_o i_o make_v this_o reason_n by_o the_o name_n of_o pastor_n be_v note_v a_o ordinary_a government_n and_o charge_n which_o have_v relation_n to_o a_o flock_n and_o therefore_o as_o long_o as_o the_o flock_n continue_v the_o pastor_n office_n must_v continue_v the_o office_n of_o one_o pastor_n as_o the_o flock_n be_v one_o it_o continue_v in_o peter_n when_o christ_n make_v he_o supreme_a pastor_n now_o when_o peter_n die_v it_o shall_v continue_v in_o his_o successor_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n therefore_o be_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n i_o perceive_v your_o pope_n can_v make_v no_o show_n of_o title_n to_o supreme-headship_a of_o the_o church_n unless_o he_o put_v christ_n from_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o for_o christ_n by_o one_o pastor_n do_v signify_v himself_o as_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o drift_n of_o all_o his_o speech_n wherein_o he_o maintain_v his_o office_n and_o authority_n ●29_n against_o the_o slander_n of_o the_o phariseis_n 10.14_o i_o be_o say_v he_o the_o good_a pastor_n and_o know_v my_o own_o and_o be_o know_v of_o i_o as_o the_o father_n know_v i_o so_o know_v i_o the_o father_n and_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n for_o my_o sheep_n other_o sheep_n i_o have_v also_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n and_o they_o must_v i_o bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_a one_o pastor_n one_o pastor_n who_o but_o he_o of_o who_o the_o word_n afore_o and_o after_o be_v mean_v he_o who_o be_v the_o good_a pastor_n who_o know_v his_o sheep_n who_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o they_o who_o have_v other_o sheep_n beside_o the_o jew_n to_o weet_v the_o gentile_n who_o he_o will_v bring_v to_o his_o fold_n and_o so_o of_o they_o both_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v as_o one_o flock_n obey_v christ_n as_o one_o pastor_n this_o be_v the_o one_o pastor_n that_o our_o saviour_n mean_v which_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v on_o my_o word_n or_o rather_o on_o his_o word_n who_o speak_v it_o believe_v antuerpiae_n your_o own_o bible_n expound_v it_o by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n with_o scripture_n of_o john_n with_o ezekiel_n in_o who_o god_n do_v promise_n that_o 22._o he_o will_v make_v of_o israel_n &_o juda_n one_o people_n and_o 24._o set_v his_o servant_n david_n that_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o david_n to_o be_v one_o pastor_n unto_o they_o all_o 34.23_o and_o he_o shall_v feed_v they_o thus_o in_o god_n law_n the_o word_n be_v mean_v of_o christ._n the_o pope_n obedient_a in_o his_o law_n will_v have_v himself_o mean_v by_o they_o you_o be_v angry_a with_o we_o when_o we_o call_v he_o antichrist_n be_v not_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n too_o gentle_a for_o he_o who_o claim_v that_o to_o himself_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o christ_n hart._n the_o pope_n will_v have_v himself_o to_o be_v mean_v by_o they_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o they_o do_v belong_v to_o he_o though_o they_o belong_v also_o to_o christ_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o pope_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v one_o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o successor_n one_o head_n not_o two_o head_n as_o a_o monster_n namely_o christ_n and_o christ_n vicar_n peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n since_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o peter_n himself_o feed_v my_o sheep_n my_o sheep_n say_v he_o in_o general_a not_o in_o particular_a these_o or_o these_o whereby_o he_o be_v understand_v to_o have_v commit_v all_o to_o he_o whether_o they_o be_v therefore_o grecians_z or_o other_o who_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o commit_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n they_o must_v needs_o confess_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n pastorem_fw-la sith_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n that_o there_o be_v one_o fold_n and_o one_o pastor_n which_o word_n though_o they_o conclude_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v that_o one_o pastor_n yet_o you_o must_v not_o take_v they_o as_o though_o the_o pope_n mean_v they_o of_o himself_o alone_o but_o that_o they_o be_v verify_v first_o in_o christ_n then_o in_o peter_n last_o in_o himself_o and_o so_o there_o continue_v one_o pastor_n by_o succession_n even_o as_o the_o church_n continue_v one_o rainoldes_n do_v you_o know_v what_o you_o say_v when_o you_o say_v there_o continue_v one_o pastor_n by_o succession_n peter_n after_o christ_n the_o pope_n after_o peter_n i_o hope_v you_o do_v it_o ignorant_o ●●_o and_o therefore_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n though_o
the_o will_n of_o god_n wherefore_o the_o succession_n of_o constantinople_n though_o they_o fetch_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o prove_v not_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o profess_v to_o be_v true_a because_o they_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v succeed_v chief_o rainoldes_n now_o you_o say_v well_o in_o deed_n the_o succession_n in_o place_n be_v nothing_o worth_a succession_n in_o doctrine_n be_v it_o which_o make_v all_o but_o what_o mean_v you_o then_o to_o send_v we_o such_o chronicle_n bead-reales_a of_o your_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o peter_n to_o gregory_n as_o undoubted_a argument_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n when_o we_o can_v send_v you_o as_o solemn_a a_o bead-roale_a of_o constantinople_n from_o andrew_n to_o jeremie_n and_o prove_v nothing_o by_o it_o what_o trifle_v be_v this_o to_o say_v first_o that_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o place_n prove_v truth_n of_o doctrine_n and_o then_o to_o add_v that_o it_o do_v so_o if_o it_o have_v succession_n in_o doctrine_n join_v with_o it_o in_o effect_n as_o if_o you_o say_v that_o succession_n in_o place_n do_v prove_v the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a if_o the_o doctrine_n be_v true_a &_o a_o couple_n of_o ear_n do_v prove_v a_o creature_n to_o be_v a_o man_n if_o they_o be_v a_o man_n ear_n the_o father_n allege_v succession_n in_o place_n not_o with_o condition_n if_o it_o have_v but_o with_o a_o reason_n that_o it_o have_v succession_n in_o doctrine_n prove_v i_o that_o you_o have_v succession_n in_o doctrine_n and_o then_o allege_v unto_o i_o the_o father_n for_o succession_n for_o if_o as_o s._n 165._o austin_n say_v against_o the_o donatist_n after_o he_o have_v reckon_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o peter_n to_o anastasius_n in_o the_o rank_n of_o this_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o one_o bishop_n find_v that_o be_v a_o donatist_n so_o you_o reckon_v they_o from_o peter_n to_o gregory_n may_v say_v in_o like_a sort_n in_o the_o rank_n of_o this_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o one_o bishop_n find_v that_o have_v usurp_v then_o be_v your_o reason_n as_o fit_v against_o we_o for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o s._n augustine_n be_v for_o the_o church_n against_o the_o donatist_n hart._n i_o may_v say_v so_o in_o like_a sort_n for_o s._n austin_n mean_v as_o well_o of_o this_o point_n as_o of_o all_o other_o when_o he_o say_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v not_o against_o it_o rainoldes_n if_o this_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v not_o against_o they_o in_o s._n augustine_n time_n yet_o many_o thing_n may_v happen_v between_o the_o cup_n and_o the_o lip_n as_o the_o proverb_n be_v much_o more_o between_o his_o time_n and_o ou●s_n but_o s._n austin_n mean_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o usurp_a in_o that_o against_o the_o donatist_n and_o if_o he_o have_v he_o learn_v by_o experience_n afterward_o that_o they_o can_v usurp_v and_o will_v if_o they_o be_v not_o curb_v for_o three_o of_o they_o even_o zosimus_n boniface_n and_o caelestin_n do_v usurp_v over_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n while_o austin_n be_v alive_a yet_o who_o with_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o aboove_o two_o hundred_o bishop_n of_o that_o country_n withstand_v their_o attempt_n as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o he_o and_o stay_v their_o pride_n hart._n their_o pride_n you_o slander_v those_o holy_a bishop_n in_o say_v so_o rainoldes_n which_o holy_a bishop_n of_o africa_n themselves_o caelestinum_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v note_v it_o with_o the_o same_o typhum_fw-la word_n and_o if_o they_o slander_v they_o it_o be_v with_o a_o matter_n of_o truth_n but_o of_o this_o 3._o hereafter_o more_o convenient_o for_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o s._n austin_n apply_v that_o text_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v not_o against_o it_o speak_v of_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o donatist_n do_v fault_n in_o not_o of_o soveraintie_n of_o power_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o question_n with_o they_o hart._n 15._o gregory_n the_o great_a speak_v of_o soveraintie_n of_o power_n and_o prove_v by_o that_o same_o text_n die_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n because_o christ_n commit_v special_o this_o church_n to_o s._n peter_n say_v to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v my_o church_n rainoldes_n by_o that_o same_o how_o christ_n say_v not_o to_o peter_n to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v my_o church_n he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o therein_o if_o gregory_n judgement_n may_v rule_v you_o domine_fw-la the_o rock_n be_v christ_n himself_o which_o peter_n have_v his_o name_n of_o and_o on_o which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n passim_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o company_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o choose_v which_o shall_v never_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v shall_v continue_v steadfast_a for_o ever_o with_o god_n for_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o there_o be_v some_o affection_n that_o trouble_a gregory_n mind_n when_o he_o do_v change_v that_o text_n and_o as_o it_o be_v appropriate_v it_o to_o his_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o stapletons_n heart_n be_v take_v with_o some_o affection_n also_o when_o he_o cite_v gregory_n to_o prove_v his_o purpose_n thence_o for_o nether_a do_v the_o title_n of_o the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n prove_v the_o roman_a papacy_n neither_o do_v gregory_n although_o he_o geve_v that_o title_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o prove_v it_o by_o that_o same_o text_n the_o thing_n which_o he_o prove_v be_v die_fw-la that_o the_o emperor_n who_o receive_v money_n for_o ecclesiastical_a livinge_n and_o spoil_v the_o church_n with_o s●monie_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o do_v chief_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o have_v touch_v his_o greediness_n of_o this_o filthy_a gain_n yea_o he_o have_v say_v gregory_n stretch_v out_o so_o far_o the_o rashness_n of_o his_o fury_n that_o he_o challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n even_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o usurp_v the_o right_a of_o earthly_a power_n over_o the_o lady_n of_o nation_n which_o he_o do_v altogether_o forbid_v to_o be_v do_v who_o special_o commit_v this_o church_n to_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v my_o church_n wherein_o that_o which_o gregory_n will_v say_v be_v plain_a enough_o by_o the_o word_n that_o go_v before_o it_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o say_n and_o prove_v it_o be_v hard_o for_o he_o say_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o the_o emperor_n usurp_v the_o right_a of_o earthly_a power_n over_o it_o whereby_o a_o man_n will_v think_v he_o mean_v to_o deny_v the_o civil_a rule_n and_o government_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o emperor_n as_o now_o the_o pope_n do_v then_o which_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o for_o passim_fw-la he_o acknowledge_v himself_o the_o emperor_n subject_n &_o use_v he_o according_o but_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o right_n of_o earthly_a power_n usurp_v over_o the_o church_n the_o right_a of_o deal_n with_o church-living_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n in_o set_v they_o to_o sale_n as_o man_n do_v farm_n and_o lease_n which_o be_v profane_a and_o detestable_a now_o gregory_n be_v grieve_v 680._o that_o the_o emperor_n ask_v money_n even_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o 40._o who_o election_n he_o confirm_v with_o his_o royal_a assent_n he_o think_v good_a to_o amplify_v the_o heinousnesse_n of_o the_o fact_n as_o most_o unlawful_a and_o wicked_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o thereupon_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v forbid_v it_o who_o special_o commit_v this_o church_n to_o s._n peter_n say_v to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v my_o church_n in_o the_o gospel_n we_o read_v of_o peter_n 9.33_o that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v when_o he_o say_v to_o christ_n who_o he_o behold_v in_o glory_n master_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o and_o let_v we_o make_v three_o tabernacle_n gregory_n have_v a_o love_a affection_n to_o rome_n will_v you_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o think_v of_o he_o as_o of_o peter_n that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o allege_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o you_o must_v needs_o grant_v the_o thing_n he_o gather_v of_o they_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o general_o commit_v 28.19_o all_o church_n to_o peter_n for_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n and_o if_o any_o special_o it_o be_v 2.8_o that_o of_o the_o
body_n and_o he_o alone_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o head_n unto_o it_o by_o give_v it_o power_n of_o life_n of_o feel_v of_o move_v and_o 2d_o he_o have_v god_n appoint_v to_o be_v the_o head_n to_o the_o church_n and_o 2.19_o by_o he_o all_o the_o body_n furnish_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o jointe_n and_o band_n increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n hart._n we_o grant_v that_o christ_n be_v proper_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o principal_a and_o quicken_a head_n but_o this_o head_n be_v imperial_a so_o to_o term_v he_o and_o invisible_a the_o pope_n be_v a_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a head_n yet_o in_o truth_n a_o head_n also_o 16._o for_o of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v two_o duty_n the_o one_o to_o be_v the_o fountain_n out_o of_o the_o which_o there_o flow_v life_n into_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n the_o other_o to_o direct_v imperio_fw-la by_o his_o rule_n and_o power_n the_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n the_o former_a duty_n do_v agree_v to_o god_n alone_o and_o christ._n the_o late_a to_o the_o service_n and_o ministry_n of_o man_n too_o rainoldes_n this_o your_o answer_n of_o two_o head_n do_v stand_v with_o more_o reason_n than_o obedient_a he_o who_o say_v that_o christ_n and_o christ_n vicar_n peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n the_o pope_n be_v all_o but_o one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n howbeit_o so_o to_o make_v a_o twofold_a head_n as_o you_o do_v by_o the_o variety_n of_o two_o duty_n it_o be_v not_o to_o divide_v but_o to_o rend_v a_o sunder_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o head_n and_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o head_n imperial_a rather_o then_o a_o ministerial_a for_o by_o rule_n and_o power_n to_o direct_v either_o the_o inward_a or_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o proper_a function_n of_o the_o head_n agree_v to_o that_o head_n alone_o that_o give_v power_n of_o life_n and_o feel_v and_o move_v to_o the_o body_n wherefore_o since_o christ_n have_v bind_v himself_o by_o his_o promise_n 28.20_o to_o be_v with_o we_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n do_v give_v this_o power_n unto_o his_o church_n by_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o do_v quicken_v both_o the_o whole_a and_o every_o member_n of_o his_o body_n they_o who_o do_v divide_v the_o preeminence_n of_o this_o duty_n between_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n allot_v to_o he_o the_o inward_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o outward_a function_n to_o be_v direct_v deserve_v to_o be_v attaint_v of_o treason_n against_o the_o lord_n for_o see_v that_o to_o exercise_v this_o rule_n and_o dominion_n be_v a_o prerogative_n royal_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o king_n of_o king_n to_o give_v it_o either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n to_o any_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v a_o lesser_a offence_n then_o high_a treason_n hart._n if_o you_o account_v this_o to_o be_v treason_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v attaint_v we_o of_o it_o you_o must_v attaint_v himself_o of_o it_o who_o by_o his_o word_n have_v bring_v we_o to_o it_o for_o s._n paul_n compare_v the_o church_n unto_o a_o body_n to_o show_v the_o sundry_a gift_n of_o christian_n and_o in_o their_o sundry_a gift_n their_o several_a duty_n by_o the_o similitude_n of_o member_n do_v mention_v a_o head_n among_o they_o 12.21_o the_o e●e_n can_v say_v unto_o the_o hand_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o thou_o nor_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o here_o the_o name_n of_o head_n must_v by_o all_o likelihood_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o pastor_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o flock_n but_o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o christ._n for_o he_o may_v say_v to_o we_o i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o and_o so_o he_o will_v we_o also_o 17.10_o when_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v we_o to_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n it_o must_v be_v mean_v therefore_o of_o peter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o consequent_a of_o the_o pope_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o bishop_n rainoldes_n if_o paul_n have_v so_o mean_v it_o either_o of_o peter_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n he_o have_v a_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a he_o can_v easy_o have_v so_o expound_v it_o but_o in_o the_o apply_v of_o his_o similitude_n to_o his_o purpose_n he_o show_v that_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o head_n they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n by_o foot_n hand_n and_o eye_n they_o who_o not_o so_o great_a though_o great_a some_o than_o other_o hart._n they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a nay_o the_o name_n of_o head_n do_v show_v it_o must_v be_v one_o and_o that_o one_o visible_a head_n which_o we_o call_v a_o ministerial_a head_n under_o christ_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n i_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o the_o which_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a head_n those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v true_o verify_v the_o head_n can_v say_v to_o the_o foot_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o rainoldes_n indeed_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o head_n those_o word_n will_v fit_v he_o well_o for_o 1._o cardinal_n poole_n discourse_v on_o the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n do_v make_v as_o he_o the_o head_n so_o king_n to_o be_v the_o foot_n and_o it_o be_v true_a the_o pope_n can_v not_o say_v to_o king_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o it_o will_v be_v hard_o go_v for_o he_o if_o they_o be_v not_o but_o if_o because_o saint_n paul_n do_v in_o that_o similitude_n mention_v a_o head_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o visible_a head_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o church_n then_o because_o s._n paul_n do_v mention_v the_o foot_n there_o must_v be_v needs_o also_o two_o visible_a foot_n by_o the_o like_a proportion_n now_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o you_o master_n hart_n which_o you_o will_v make_v the_o two_o foot_n of_o your_o church_n the_o emperor_n i_o trow_v must_v be_v the_o right_a foot_n the_o left_a who_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n what_o shall_v the_o french_a king_n do_v then_o it_o be_v well_o that_o the_o king_n of_o scot_n be_v no_o member_n of_o it_o nor_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n marry_o we_o have_v news_n of_o the_o king_n of_o swethland_n that_o jesuit_n have_v convert_v he_o shall_v he_o be_v the_o left_a foot_n or_o shall_v the_o king_n of_o poleland_n set_v in_o a_o foot_n for_o it_o or_o be_v the_o king_n of_o boheme_n near_a it_o there_o be_v a_o king_n of_o bungo_n too_o 4._o who_o be_v report_v to_o protect_v your_o religion_n in_o his_o country_n and_o england_n likewise_o the_o great_a turk_n &_o other_o prince_n of_o mahomet_n sect_n they_o may_v be_v foot_n in_o time_n also_o but_o how_o many_o foot_n may_v this_o body_n have_v may_v it_o have_v six_o seven_o eight_o may_v it_o have_v twenty_o visible_a foot_n and_o may_v it_o not_o have_v ten_o not_o four_o not_o two_o may_v it_o have_v but_o one_o visible_a head_n hart._n cardinal_n pole_n compare_v king_n unto_o foot_n not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o count_v they_o as_o special_a member_n though_o not_o head_n but_o because_o the_o church_n in_o the_o course_n of_o her_o growth_n be_v last_o of_o all_o increase_v with_o they_o as_o with_o foot_n and_o so_o do_v make_v a_o end_n of_o grow_v rainoldes_n then_o in_o saint_n paul_n time_n the_o church_n have_v no_o foot_n but_o a_o head_n without_o they_o and_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v to_o say_v that_o the_o head_n can_v not_o speak_v to_o the_o foot_n when_o it_o have_v no_o foot_n to_o speak_v too_o hart._n yes_o it_o have_v foot_n then_o but_o of_o a_o other_o sort_n for_o they_o who_o be_v of_o low_a degree_n and_o mean_a gift_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v resemble_v to_o foot_n in_o comparison_n of_o other_o who_o be_v in_o those_o respect_n as_o hand_n and_o eye_n above_o they_o rainoldes_n and_o do_v you_o think_v the_o church_n have_v but_o two_o such_o foot_n or_o have_v it_o many_o hundred_o for_o christian_n be_v grow_v 4.4_o long_o before_o to_o thousand_o and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a the_o most_o of_o they_o be_v eye_n and_o hand_n hart._n it_o have_v no_o doubt_n many_o but_o you_o must_v not_o rack_n the_o member_n of_o similitude_n beyond_o the_o principal_a point_n whereto_o they_o be_v apply_v and_o mean_v for_o else_o you_o may_v infer_v too_o that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v but_o two_o eye_n and_o two_o hand_n because_o a_o man_n body_n to_o which_o s._n paul_n resemble_v the_o church_n have_v no_o more_o rainoldes_n as_o you_o say_v yet_o
ground_n of_o aristotle_n as_o principle_n of_o truth_n equal_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o set_v not_o down_o example_n of_o all_o popish_a error_n grow_v by_o these_o occasion_n confirm_v by_o thomas_n and_o the_o schoolman_n because_o in_o our_o conference_n they_o shall_v if_o god_n will_v have_v each_o their_o due_a place_n now_o for_o the_o present_a i_o grant_v that_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o schoolman_n doctrine_n on_o these_o consideration_n have_v move_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o your_o catholic_a error_n and_o a_o lutheran_n mislike_n not_o of_o schoole-divinitie_n but_o of_o this_o schoole-divinitie_n be_v a_o companion_n of_o our_o heresy_n and_o in_o our_o university_n oxford_n and_o cambridge_n we_o study_v scripture_n more_o than_o it_o so_o that_o in_o some_o part_n you_o rail_v upon_o we_o just_o rome_n that_o heresy_n in_o england_n have_v abandon_v the_o study_n of_o it_o for_o we_o have_v not_o beléeve_v 28.22_o the_o heresy_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o new_a fangle_a man_n his_o apostle_n s._n paul_n unless_o we_o have_v contemn_v the_o catholic_a fancy_n of_o the_o schoolman_n who_o as_o 19.24_o demetrius_n strive_v against_o it_o but_o you_o shall_v never_o drive_v i_o with_o bug_n of_o stapleton_n the_o name_n of_o luther_n or_o wicklef_n or_o melanchthon_n or_o any_o else_o from_o hold_v that_o with_o they_o which_o they_o hold_v of_o god_n for_o though_o we_o rejoice_v not_o in_o name_n draw_v from_o they_o with_o the_o which_o you_o press_v we_o but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o 11.26_o christian_n 1.13_o into_o the_o which_o we_o be_v baptize_v yet_o i_o know_v no_o harm_n by_o they_o nor_o you_o i_o think_v set_v slander_n apart_o why_o we_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o more_o than_o our_o father_n be_v of_o caecilian_a 4._o of_o who_o the_o donatist_n call_v they_o caecilianist_n but_o have_v they_o be_v as_o evil_a as_o their_o enemy_n report_v they_o their_o life_n stain_v with_o lewdness_n their_o doctrine_n mix_v with_o leaven_n no_o less_o than_o be_v the_o pharisee_n s._n 23.6_o paul_n have_v teach_v i_o to_o acknowledge_v myself_o even_o a_o pharisee_n if_o need_v be_v not_o only_o a_o lutheran_n in_o that_o the_o pharise_n teach_v a_o truth_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a wherefore_o if_o the_o schoolman_n to_o return_v to_o my_o purpose_n if_o all_o the_o schoolman_n have_v distinguish_v the_o key_n from_o the_o function_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v that_o function_n from_o the_o remit_v and_o retain_v of_o sin_n as_o you_o say_v they_o do_v yet_o may_v not_o their_o credit_n overweigh_v the_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v against_o it_o but_o what_o if_o all_o the_o schoolman_n have_v not_o do_v so_o as_o in_o deed_n they_o have_v not_o what_o if_o they_o have_v do_v the_o contrary_a rather_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o he_o who_o have_v teach_v his_o tongue_n so_o shameful_o to_o lie_v as_o though_o he_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o reverence_a man_n first_o 1●_n peter_n lombard_n the_o father_n of_o the_o schoolman_n do_v define_v the_o key_n by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v &_o lose_v and_o so_o he_o divide_v and_o handle_v they_o according_o the_o next_o after_o he_o 5._o alexander_n of_o alice_n tread_v the_o same_o step_n and_o say_v that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o open_v and_o shut_v which_o be_v the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o key_n thomas_n of_o aquine_n after_o he_o mislike_v 1._o peter_n lombard_n for_o require_v knowledge_n which_o some_o who_o claim_v the_o key_n have_v not_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o rest_n and_o make_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o key_n john_n scot_n after_o he_o 5._o although_o he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o two_o court_n secret_a and_o open_a as_o you_o do_v 3._o yet_o he_o dream_v not_o of_o any_o other_o key_n then_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v yea_o that_o which_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o your_o supreme_a head_n 1._o scot_n 2._o thomas_n and_o 6._o alexander_n affirm_v the_o same_o that_o i_o namely_o that_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n in_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o matthew_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o twenty_o of_o john_n and_o these_o be_v account_v the_o chief_a of_o your_o schoolman_n and_o so_o esteem_v among_o you_o that_o the_o lombard●●_n first_o of_o they_o be_v call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n alexander_n the_o next_o the_o doctor_n irrefragable_a thomas_n the_o three_o the_o doctor_n angelical_a scotus_n the_o four_o and_o last_o the_o subtle_a doctor_n what_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o black_a guard_n judge_v of_o the_o matter_n i_o have_v not_o inquire_v but_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o wear_v their_o master_n livery_n chief_o since_o scot_n &_o thomas_n do_v not_o square_a about_o it_o which_o i_o think_v the_o rather_o because_o d._n stapleton_n though_o boast_v that_o all_o the_o schoolman_n be_v of_o his_o side_n yet_o name_v not_o one_o whereas_o he_o use_v not_o to_o spare_v his_o margin_n for_o quotation_n when_o they_o who_o he_o allege_v do_v speak_v or_o seem_v to_o speak_v for_o he_o belike_o the_o queen_n must_v lose_v her_o right_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v have_v hart._n you_o need_v not_o find_v fault_n that_o he_o quote_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o schoolman_n to_o prove_v his_o exposition_n when_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o that_o which_o you_o like_v better_o even_o by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n rainoldes_n by_o conference_n of_o other_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n hart._n no._n but_o by_o a_o word_n of_o the_o same_o text_n addit_fw-la even_o be_v the_o conjunction_n which_o see_v that_o it_o couple_v thing_n distinct_a and_o different_a in_o the_o former_a member_n and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o and_o upon_o this_o peter_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n therefore_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v must_v differ_v from_o the_o key_n because_o the_o last_o clause_n be_v knit_v with_o be_v unto_o the_o rest_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v rainoldes_n and_o do_v not_o he_o think_v you_o go_v about_o to_o show_v and_o prove_v by_o this_o example_n that_o conference_n of_o scripture_n be_v but_o a_o bad_a mean_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n doubtless_o such_o a_o conference_n as_o this_o at_o which_o he_o fumble_v be_v not_o the_o wise_a way_n to_o find_v it_o but_o i_o know_v not_o how_o when_o he_o meddle_v with_o scripture_n he_o seem_v half_o amaze_v as_o it_o be_v a_o creature_n in_o a_o strange_a element_n for_o neither_o he_o remember_v 〈…〉_o his_o own_o exception_n against_o we_o that_o in_o the_o same_o sentence_n one_o word_n have_v sundry_a sense_n often_o nor_o mark_v that_o a_o conjunction_n be_v use_v as_o proper_o to_o couple_v together_o agree_v thing_n as_o different_a 〈…〉_o and_o both_o as_o here_o in_o one_o place_n nor_o consider_v that_o thing_n may_v differ_v each_o from_o other_o and_o yet_o be_v expound_v each_o of_o they_o by_o other_o as_o the_o cause_n by_o the_o effect_n the_o whole_a by_o the_o part_n nor_o weigh_v the_o point_n in_o question_n that_o although_o in_o matthew_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n do_v differ_v in_o meaning_n as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v have_v they_o yet_o christ_n by_o his_o general_a commission_n in_o john_n may_v perform_v joint_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n that_o which_o he_o promise_v to_o he_o and_o this_o to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o controversy_n because_o it_o be_v the_o issue_n between_o you_o and_o we_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o commission_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o father_n observe_v by_o the_o schoolman_n do_v convince_v so_o forcible_o that_o po●ti_n the_o jesuit_n who_o i_o name_v the_o pope_n own_o professor_n &_o most_o earnest_a proctor_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v fain_o to_o seek_v other_o shift_n whereby_o to_o help_v it_o but_o this_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o grant_v for_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n be_v only_o two_o of_o order_n and_o of_o jurisdiction_n he_o declare_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v they_o both_o to_o his_o apostle_n the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o that_o he_o say_v to_o they_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o which_o cyrill_n and_o chrysostom_n note_n upon_o it_o the_o key_n of_o order_n in_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n soever_o you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v to_o they_o who_o sin_n soever_o you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v or_o if_o d._n stapleton_n love_v himself_o so_o well_o that_o
earthly_a not_o bodily_a but_o spiritual_a not_o temporal_a but_o eternal_a their_o authority_n they_o receive_v by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o commission_n but_o the_o discharge_n of_o the_o duty_n require_v great_a treasure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereof_o he_o give_v they_o some_o 20.22_o then_o more_o in_o the_o 2.3_o fiery_a tongue_n from_o heaven_n more_o 11.18_o as_o the_o church_n state_n require_v and_o these_o 19.16_o well_o occupy_v gain_v more_o with_o the_o increase_n whereof_o their_o ability_n still_o increase_v their_o authority_n not_o so_o which_o all_o be_v give_v they_o at_o once_o hart._n but_o a_o king_n for_o better_a trial_n of_o his_o justice_n may_v commit_v some_o lesser_a authority_n first_o unto_o they_o and_o afterward_o great_a rainoldes_n 10.5_o so_o do_v christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n but_o have_v make_v trial_n of_o they_o in_o the_o lesser_a he_o call_v they_o by_o this_o commission_n to_o the_o great_a nay_o to_o the_o great_a than_o which_o he_o have_v no_o great_a for_o they_o hart._n not_o within_o the_o limit_n perhaps_o of_o their_o commission_n yet_o he_o may_v enlarge_v they_o and_o give_v they_o great_a limit_n rainoldes_n but_o christ_n in_o this_o commission_n have_v give_v they_o authority_n through_o all_o his_o dominion_n not_o through_o a_o shire_n only_o for_o he_o send_v they_o 24.47_o to_o all_o nation_n hart._n and_o what_o if_o i_o grant_v that_o christ_n in_o this_o commission_n give_v all_o that_o power_n to_o peter_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o &_o be_v to_o give_v unto_o he_o rainoldes_n if_o he_o give_v he_o all_o that_o power_n in_o this_o commission_n no_o part_n thereof_o remain_v to_o be_v give_v in_o any_o other_o if_o no_o part_n to_o be_v give_v then_o be_v there_o no_o further_a power_n give_v to_o he_o by_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n if_o no_o further_a power_n be_v give_v he_o thereby_o the_o bulwark_n of_o your_o papacy_n be_v build_v on_o a_o fancy_n hart._n then_o belike_o our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o no_o purpose_n when_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n 17._o do_v thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o lamb_n do_v thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n rainoldes_n god_n forbid_v to_o great_a purpose_n though_o not_o to_o you_o for_o he_o give_v he_o therein_o a_o commandment_n though_o not_o a_o commission_n as_o if_o the_o queen_n majesty_n have_v make_v already_o by_o letter_n of_o commission_n some_o justice_n in_o the_o north_n &_o one_o perhaps_o among_o they_o of_o who_o faithful_a heart_n she_o be_v persuade_v well_o yet_o that_o have_v show_v himself_o not_o of_o the_o trusty_a in_o time_n of_o the_o rebellion_n she_o shall_v say_v unto_o he_o to_o stir_v in_o he_o a_o lively_a regard_n of_o his_o duty_n do_v you_o love_v we_o have_v care_n of_o our_o poor_a subject_n do_v you_o love_v we_o have_v care_n of_o our_o good_a people_n which_o charge_n and_o commandment_n christ_n may_v give_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o to_o peter_n than_o the_o queen_n to_o any_o justice_n in_o the_o north_n because_o she_o know_v not_o whither_o any_o new_a bull_n be_v come_v from_o rome_n or_o new_a rebellion_n be_v towards_o but_o he_o know_v that_o peter_n shall_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n than_o he_o be_v when_o he_o flee_v and_o deny_v his_o master_n whereof_o he_o forewarn_v he_o straight_o upon_o the_o give_v he_o of_o this_o commandment_n and_o that_o with_o earnest_a thou_o word_n of_o great_a asseveration_n as_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o weight_n tell_v he_o 21.18_o that_o he_o shall_v die_v a_o gréevous_a death_n for_o his_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ._n so_o that_o to_o arm_v he_o against_o that_o fear_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o before_o have_v make_v he_o to_o betray_v his_o duty_n when_o he_o have_v less_o cause_n to_o fear_v christ_n have_v make_v the_o iron_n hot_a as_o it_o be_v by_o ask_v he_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o strike_v it_o to_o make_v it_o a_o fit_a instrument_n to_o build_v with_o &_o so_o command_v feed_v my_o flock_n yea_o though_o the_o work_n be_v painful_a and_o will_v cost_v thou_o dear_a for_o it_o shall_v bring_v thou_o to_o thy_o death_n so_o he_o commit_v not_o a_o new_a charge_n to_o peter_n but_o will_v he_o to_o look_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v commit_v and_o flee_v not_o from_o it_o for_o any_o danger_n as_o if_o a_o wise_a shipmaster_n see_v a_o dangerous_a storm_n at_o hand_n shall_v command_v his_o mariner_n who_o he_o have_v well_o deserve_v of_o that_o if_o they_o love_v he_o they_o look_v unto_o their_o tackeling_n hart._n well_o if_o it_o be_v perhaps_o not_o a_o commission_n but_o a_o commandment_n yet_o be_v it_o a_o commandment_n to_o discharge_v that_o duty_n wherewith_o he_o be_v put_v in_o trust_n by_o commission_n rainoldes_n i_o grant_v what_o infer_v you_o hart._n then_o peter_n have_v commission_n to_o feed_v the_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n who_o do_v deny_v it_o for_o 20.21_o he_o have_v the_o same_o commission_n from_o christ_n that_o 4.18_o christ_n from_o god_n his_o father_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o poor_a to_o heal_v the_o brokenhearted_a to_o preach_v deliverance_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o recover_v of_o sight_n to_o the_o blind_a to_o set_v at_o liberty_n they_o that_o be_v bruise_v and_o preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v in_o other_o word_n to_o feed_v the_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n of_o christ._n for_o christ_n by_o a_o similitude_n be_v name_v the_o 4._o chief_a shepherd_n his_o church_n and_o choose_v servant_n 2._o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n whereof_o he_o give_v a_o principal_a charge_n to_o his_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v feed_v it_o wherefore_o the_o commandment_n give_v unto_o peter_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n import_v the_o commission_n which_o before_o be_v give_v he_o when_o christ_n send_v he_o as_o god_n send_v christ._n but_o in_o this_o commission_n the_o apostle_n all_o be_v equal_a unto_o peter_n they_o be_v equal_a therefore_o to_o he_o in_o charge_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n of_o christ._n and_o so_o the_o second_o point_n which_o i_o have_v to_o prove_v the_o very_a deaths-wound_n of_o your_o supremacy_n be_v prove_v hart._n prove_v how_o prove_v rainoldes_n as_o clear_o as_o the_o sun_n do_v shine_v at_o noon_n day_n for_o to_o send_v the_o apostle_n as_o god_n the_o father_n send_v christ_n be_v to_o give_v they_o charge_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n but_o christ_n send_v the_o apostle_n as_o god_n the_o father_n send_v he_o therefore_o he_o give_v they_o charge_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n &_o lamb_n now_o this_o be_v the_o great_a power_n that_o can_v be_v show_v be_v give_v peter_n by_o christ._n wherefore_o in_o the_o great_a power_n that_o christ_n give_v he_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o be_v his_o equal_n if_o you_o be_v loath_a herein_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n yet_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o no●●●estamento_fw-la a_o ancient_a pope_n unless_o the_o canon_n law_n lie_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v honour_n and_o power_n in_o equal_a fellowship_n with_o peter_n hart._n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a to_o peter_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o apostleship_n not_o of_o their_o pastoral_a charge_n rainoldes_n this_o answer_n of_o you_o have_v a_o distinction_n but_o not_o a_o difference_n it_o be_v the_o same_o fellow_n but_o in_o a_o other_o gown_n who_o 3●_n a_o little_a rather_o i_o show_v to_o be_v a_o bankrupt_a and_o now_o he_o come_v forth_o again_o in_o new_a apparel_n like_o a_o honest_a and_o wealthy_a citizen_n hart_n why_o say_v you_o so_o rainoldes_n because_o you_o do_v distinguish_v the_o bishoply_n power_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o their_o power_n apostolic_a as_o here_o with_o other_o word_n you_o do_v their_o apostleship_n from_o their_o pastoral_a charge_n whereas_o in_o deed_n the_o pastoral_a charge_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o their_o apostleship_n and_o have_v no_o more_o difference_n than_o the_o other_o have_v for_o the_o name_n of_o pastor_n be_v use_v in_o two_o sense_n a_o special_a and_o a_o general_n in_o the_o special_a to_o note_v a_o kind_n of_o function_n distinct_a from_o the_o apostle_n 15._o your_o doctor_n grant_v it_o and_o so_o apostle_n be_v not_o pastor_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 4.11_o some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o general_a to_o signify_v the_o common_a charge_n of_o all_o such_o as_o do_v teach_v the_o word_n and_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n in_o which_o respect_n 10.11_o christ_n himself_o be_v call_v a_o pastor_n wherefore_o since_o apostle_n
i_o speak_v before_o fift_o the_o first_o charge_n of_o feed_v the_o lamb_n &_o the_o last_o of_o the_o sheep_n be_v utter_v with_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v feed_v the_o second_o of_o the_o sheep_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v rule_n to_o show_v that_o the_o lamb_n even_o lay-man_n as_o i_o say_v be_v only_o to_o be_v feed_v but_o the_o sheep_n i_o mean_v bishop_n and_o pastor_n be_v both_o to_o be_v feed_v and_o to_o be_v rule_v of_o peter_n six_o the_o word_n to_o feed_v have_v a_o great_a force_n and_o signify_v a_o power_n most_o full_a and_o absolute_a as_o the_o which_o impli_v all_o other_o action_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n for_o they_o be_v all_o direct_v to_o the_o food_n of_o soul_n there_o be_v observe_v more_o such_o note_n to_o like_a effect_n but_o either_o not_o so_o pithy_a and_o sound_a as_o these_o be_v or_o treat_v of_o already_o wherefore_o i_o content_v myself_o with_o these_o six_o which_o if_o you_o lay_v together_o and_o mark_v what_o may_v be_v say_v in_o several_a for_o each_o of_o they_o you_o have_v enough_o to_o prove_v a_o great_a worthiness_n of_o peter_n in_o any_o man_n judgement_n in_o we_o a_o supremacy_n rainoldes_n that_o which_o be_v write_v 30.33_o in_o the_o proverbe_n of_o solomon_n he_o that_o wringe_v his_o nose_n cause_v blood_n to_o come_v out_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o the_o proof_n which_o you_o press_v out_o of_o these_o circumstance_n the_o most_o pithy_a of_o they_o if_o any_o of_o they_o have_v pith_n be_v they_o which_o touch_v the_o matter_n the_o question_n of_o love_n require_v the_o charge_n enjoin_v of_o feed_v and_o each_o of_o they_o repeat_v thrice_o which_o all_o in_o very_a truth_n as_o christ_n do_v use_v they_o to_o peter_n be_v rather_o a_o stay_n of_o his_o weakness_n than_o a_o mark_n of_o his_o worthiness_n much_o less_o a_o proof_n of_o his_o supremacy_n for_o peter_n have_v pretend_v great_a love_n to_o christ_n then_o have_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o christ_n have_v tell_v they_o of_o their_o frailty_n the_o night_n before_o his_o passion_n 26.31_o all_o you_o will_v be_v offend_v at_o i_o this_o night_n for_o it_o be_v write_v i_o will_v smite_v the_o shepherd_n and_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v scatter_v peter_n answer_v say_v unto_o he_o though_o all_o shall_v be_v offend_v at_o thou_o yet_o will_v i_o never_o be_v offend_v whereto_o when_o christ_n reply_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o this_o night_n before_o the_o cock_n crow_n thou_o will_v deny_v i_o thrice_o peter_n answer_v he_o again_o though_o i_o shall_v die_v with_o thou_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o deny_v thou_o this_o promise_n as_o it_o be_v make_v by_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o chief_o by_o peter_n so_o be_v it_o break_v by_o they_o all_o but_o chief_o by_o he_o for_o they_o do_v all_o forsake_n christ_n peter_n do_v not_o only_o forsake_v he_o but_o forswear_v he_o too_o wherefore_o when_o our_o saviour_n after_o his_o resurrection_n will_v gather_v they_o together_o to_o confirm_v they_o from_o their_o fear_n and_o give_v they_o power_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o nation_n he_o that_o in_o comfort_v they_o all_o before_o his_o passion_n remember_v peter_n chief_o as_o nee_v it_o most_o 32_o but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o do_v then_o in_o send_v for_o they_o to_o meet_v he_o in_o galilee_n remember_v peter_n namely_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o angel_n say_v to_o the_o woman_n 16.7_o tell_v his_o disciple_n and_o peter_n that_o he_o will_v go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n peter_n a_o disciple_n yet_o name_v beside_o the_o disciple_n ●1_n as_o who_o may_v think_v himself_o not_o worthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o disciple_n that_o have_v deny_v his_o master_n thrice_o now_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o he_o into_o galilee_n and_o have_v receive_v common_a both_o comfort_n and_o commission_n to_o execute_v the_o charge_n whereto_o they_o be_v choose_v christ_n admonish_v peter_n particular_o of_o his_o duty_n and_o move_v he_o beside_o the_o rest_n to_o do_v it_o faithful_o as_o he_o particular_o before_o have_v betray_v it_o and_o have_v behave_v himself_o most_o fearful_o above_o the_o rest_n to_o encourage_v he_o therefore_o with_o assure_v his_o conscience_n ●_o of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o strengthen_v he_o to_o constancy_n that_o he_o offend_v no_o more_o s●_n christ_n demand_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o love_v he_o and_o thereupon_o charge_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n in_o demand_v of_o he_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o more_o than_o these_o first_o he_o touch_v his_o fault_n who_o have_v profess_v more_o than_o these_o but_o have_v perform_v less_o than_o these_o then_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v pardon_v for_o 7.47_o he_o who_o love_v more_o to_o he_o more_o be_v forgive_v his_o great_a love_n be_v a_o token_n of_o it_o in_o charge_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o lamb_n and_o his_o sheep_n he_o sharpen_v his_o care_n that_o now_o he_o be_v faithful_a and_o firm_a in_o follow_v christ_n though_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o danger_n yea_o to_o death_n thereby_o both_o which_o 10._o the_o demand_n and_o charge_n be_v thrice_o repeat_v the_o demand_n that_o peter_n by_o his_o threefold_a answer_n may_v countervail_v his_o threefold_a denial_n of_o christ_n the_o charge_n because_o that_o 12.11_o nail_n the_o often_o they_o be_v strike_v the_o deep_o they_o do_v pierce_v 3.1_o to_o write_v the_o same_o to_o christian_n it_o greeve_v not_o our_o apostle_n it_o be_v a_o safe_a thing_n for_o us._n and_o although_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o exposition_n be_v very_o apparent_a by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n yet_o that_o you_o may_v take_v it_o with_o the_o better_a appetite_n who_o love_v not_o to_o eat_v meat_n without_o this_o sauce_n you_o may_v know_v that_o i_o find_v it_o for_o the_o chief_a point_n which_o touch_v the_o matter_n near_a in_o cyril_n austin_n ambrose_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n wherefore_o your_o pithy_a note_n out_o of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n have_v colour_n of_o some_o proof_n for_o peter_n infirmity_n but_o nought_o for_o his_o supremacy_n as_o for_o the_o other_o three_o which_o you_o pick_v out_o of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o feed_v they_o have_v no_o pith_n at_o all_o they_o be_v as_o bone_n without_o marrow_n if_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o rome_n the_o study_n of_o the_o tongue_n renew_v in_o your_o seminary_n that_o by_o show_v thereof_o you_o may_v out_o face_v the_o protestant_n who_o by_o help_n thereof_o have_v rid_v your_o filth_n out_o of_o the_o church_n then_o your_o tongue_n will_v prove_v as_o good_a as_o the_o miracle_n which_o 13.22_o jannes_n wrought_a and_o jambres_n to_o harden_v pharaos_n hart_n by_o do_v like_a as_o moses_n do_v you_o cast_v we_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o a_o 41._o kingdom_n of_o grammarian_n but_o you_o will_v raise_v a_o popedom_n of_o they_o and_o ●tult●●_n as_o erasmus_n say_v that_o schoolman_n speak_v barbarous_o say_v it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o the_o majesty_n of_o divinity_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o grammarian_n so_o the_o popedom_n of_o grammarian_n deal_v too_o too_o pope-like_a in_o expound_v of_o word_n as_o 8._o pope_n do_v full_a oft_o in_o dispense_n with_o thing_n will_v not_o have_v they_o bind_v to_o the_o grammatical_a sense_n wherein_o their_o author_n use_v they_o but_o if_o we_o may_v obtain_v that_o justice_n be_v minister_v according_a to_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o our_o kingdom_n then_o shall_v the_o poor_a word_n which_o your_o popedom_n force_v to_o speak_v for_o the_o papacye_n that_o which_o they_o never_o mean_v be_v rescue_v from_o that_o injury_n for_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signyfy_v as_o fervent_a love_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o deed_n the_o very_a same_o chyefe●y_a in_o s._n john_n who_o declare_v the_o perfect_a and_o entire_a love_n of_o 10.7_o god_n towards_o christ_n of_o ●2_n christ_n towards_o he_o one_o where_o express_v it_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o other_o where_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yea_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d more_o oft_o then_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o if_o the_o word_n have_v any_o difference_n in_o sense_n it_o will_v be_v very_o likely_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v rather_o the_o more_o significant_a of_o the_o two_o since_o it_o be_v use_v also_o testament_n common_o to_o note_v the_o love_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v bear_v towards_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v bear_v one_o to_o a_o other_o and_o
the_o apostle_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o etc._n they_o pay_v it_o so_o do_v 1●_n all_o the_o faithful_a every_o one_o to_o his_o brethren_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o 12.25_o as_o be_v all_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o therefore_o each_o to_o help_v other_o our_o 8._o english_a chronicle_n have_v a_o story_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n and_o godwin_n earl_n of_o kent_n that_o when_o they_o be_v sit_v at_o table_n together_o harald_n the_o king_n cupbearer_n the_o earl_n son_n do_v stumble_v so_o with_o one_o foot_n that_o he_o be_v down_o almost_o but_o recover_v himself_o with_o the_o other_o foot_n he_o neither_o fall_v nor_o shed_v the_o drink_n whereat_o when_o the_o earl_n smile_v and_o say_v now_o one_o brother_n help_v a_o other_o the_o king_n call_v to_o mind_n his_o brother_n alfred_n death_n who_o the_o earl_n have_v slay_v behold_v he_o with_o a_o displease_a countenance_n and_o say_v so_o may_v my_o brother_n also_o have_v holpen_v i_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o which_o story_n the_o cupbearer_n who_o stumble_v do_v show_v that_o one_o foot_n may_v strengthen_v a_o other_o and_o stay_v they_o both_o that_o they_o fall_v not_o the_o earl_n who_o observe_v therein_o a_o brother_n duty_n do_v show_v that_o the_o young_a may_v strengthen_v the_o elder_a or_o the_o elder_a the_o yoong_a the_o king_n who_o remember_v his_o own_o estate_n by_o it_o do_v show_v that_o the_o inferior_a may_v strengthen_v the_o superior_a yea_o the_o member_n the_o head_n by_o the_o proportion_n of_o which_o point_v a_o man_n of_o reason_n may_v see_v that_o a_o equal_a in_o all_o respect_n may_v strengthen_v a_o equal_a that_o among_o unequalles_n the_o left_a may_v strengthen_v the_o right_n and_o the_o right_a the_o left_a yea_o that_o a_o arm_n that_o a_o foot_n may_v strengthen_v the_o head_n and_o save_v it_o perhaps_o from_o take_v such_o a_o fall_n as_o will_v crush_v it_o in_o piece_n wherefore_o the_o charge_n of_o peter_n to_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o he_o be_v make_v head_n of_o the_o mean_a among_o the_o faithful_a much_o less_o of_o the_o pastor_n who_o 5.1_o he_o call_v his_o fellow-elders_a and_o least_o of_o all_o of_o the_o apostle_n 28.19_o who_o commission_n be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o to_o all_o nation_n hart._n it_o be_v true_a that_o other_o may_v strengthen_v their_o brethren_n as_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n but_o christ_n command_v peter_n to_o do_v it_o as_o their_o head_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v 8._o by_o the_o occasion_n whereon_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v for_o when_o there_o arise_v a_o strife_n among_o the_o apostle_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o great_a christ_n say_v unto_o they_o 22.25_o the_o kingesof_n the_o gentile_n do_v reign_v over_o they_o but_o you_o not_o so_o and_o so_o forth_o teach_v they_o that_o libidinem_fw-la all_o desire_n and_o lust_n of_o reign_v aught_o to_o be_v far_o from_o his_o minister_n videretur_fw-la yet_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v thereby_o to_o have_v forbid_v withal_o or_o take_v away_o all_o power_n of_o reign_v from_o they_o he_o add_v those_o word_n speak_v to_o peter_n only_o plain_o declare_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a which_o be_v the_o matter_n where_o about_o they_o strive_v rainoldes_n cato_n say_v 2._o that_o he_o marvel_v that_o a_o soothsayer_n do_v not_o laugh_v when_o he_o see_v a_o soothsayer_n i_o think_v the_o professor_n of_o your_o divinity_n shall_v laugh_v when_o they_o see_v one_o a_o other_o for_o they_o prove_v the_o point_n of_o their_o popish_a doctrine_n by_o as_o strong_a reason_n as_o the_o sooth_n sayer_n use_v to_o prove_v their_o divination_n by_o the_o liver_n and_o the_o hart_n and_o other_o entrails_n of_o beast_n but_o child_n be_v persuade_v when_o they_o hear_v a_o ring_n of_o bell_n that_o the_o bell_n speak_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v fancy_v at_o least_o like_v unto_o it_o the_o lord_n when_o the_o apostle_n do_v strive_v about_o dominion_n and_o superiority_n tell_v they_o that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v among_o the_o rest_n as_o king_n among_o the_o gentile_n yet_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v withal_o to_o have_v forbid_v all_o dominion_n among_o they_o he_o appoint_v peter_n to_o be_v their_o supreme_a head_n thus_o say_v the_o soothsayer_n but_o what_o say_v the_o scripture_n in_o effect_v the_o clean_a contrary_n for_o it_o show_v that_o christ_n 2d_o have_v reprove_v they_o for_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a and_o thirst_v to_o be_v lord_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o earthly_a king_n ●6_n teach_v they_o that_o a_o humble_v of_o themselves_o to_o their_o brethren_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o do_v good_a by_o serve_v each_o of_o other_o must_v be_v the_o preeminence_n that_o they_o shall_v seek_v as_o 27._o he_o have_v do_v and_o as_o 28._o they_o have_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o trouble_n so_o 29._o have_v he_o appoint_v to_o they_o a_o kingdom_n also_o 30._o to_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o that_o bliss_n and_o glory_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v reign_v himself_o as_o king_n of_o king_n &_o they_o as_o counsellor_n about_o he_o sit_v on_o 19.28_o twelve_o throne_n to_o judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n now_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o speech_n of_o christ_n debar_v the_o apostle_n all_o from_o that_o supremacy_n of_o papa_n our_o most_o holy_a lord_n the_o pope_n which_o you_o will_v put_v on_o peter_n the_o late_a have_v great_a colour_n for_o his_o dream_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n remove_v libidinem_fw-la all_o lust_n of_o reign_a ftom_n his_o minister_n and_o potestatem_fw-la not_o all_o power_n of_o reign_v because_o it_o mention_v a_o kingdom_n that_o christ_n appoint_v for_o they_o but_o this_o import_v rather_o a_o equality_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n since_o the_o state_n be_v common_a and_o throne_n be_v give_v to_o they_o al._n or_o if_o there_o may_v be_v even_o so_o notwithstanding_o a_o superiority_n as_o at_o a_o council_n table_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o sit_v one_o before_o a_o other_o yet_o be_v that_o nothing_o unto_o that_o supremacy_n which_o you_o claim_v for_o peter_n for_o to_o serve_v your_o purpose_n christ_n shall_v have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v establish_v they_o all_o in_o seat_n of_o honour_n but_o peter_n in_o a_o throne_n like_o 10.18_o the_o throne_n of_o solomon_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v their_o pope_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o cardinal_n 8._o to_o sedebitis_fw-la sit_v about_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v both_o ●●●rarum_fw-la counsellor_n to_o he_o and_o judge_n with_o he_o of_o all_o the_o earth_n hart._n it_o be_v a_o folly_n i_o see_v for_o i_o to_o reason_n with_o you_o if_o you_o be_v resolve_v to_o cast_v of_o so_o weighty_a reason_n as_o trifle_n rainoldes_n a_o folly_n indeed_o if_o you_o go_v about_o to_o make_v i_o esteem_v of_o molehill_n as_o mountain_n hart._n i_o go_v not_o about_o it_o but_o this_o that_o the_o reason_n which_o be_v in_o truth_n as_o mountain_n you_o will_v esteem_v they_o so_o rainoldes_n then_o you_o must_v prove_v they_o so_o but_o if_o your_o mountain_n travel_n and_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o mouse_n you_o may_v not_o look_v that_o i_o shall_v admire_v it_o as_o a_o giant_n hart._n well_o let_v we_o leave_v the_o occasion_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o weigh_v the_o word_n in_o themselves_o 8._o for_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v therein_o first_o in_o the_o common_a danger_n of_o all_o he_o strengthen_v peter_n only_a satan_n have_v desire_v you_o to_o winnow_v you_o as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o then_o lest_o that_o strengthen_n shall_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o peter_n own_o sake_n alone_o or_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a faith_n he_o add_v and_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n show_v that_o he_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v strengthen_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o as_o who_o shall_v be_v afterward_o the_o pastor_n of_o they_o all_o rainoldes_n it_o be_v a_o needless_a labour_n for_o i_o to_o spend_v word_n in_o these_o your_o two_o point_n if_o you_o have_v mark_v that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v already_o for_o i_o show_v that_o the_o former_a argue_v his_o weakness_n the_o late_a open_v his_o duty_n but_o neither_o prove_v any_o preeminence_n at_o all_o save_v a_o preeminence_n in_o frailty_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o christ_n in_o those_o word_n do_v three_o thing_n whereof_o one_o be_v a_o boil_v and_o therefore_o you_o touch_v it_o not_o for_o in_o the_o danger_n of_o they_o all_o but_o
nor_o forsake_v thou_o you_o have_v your_o choice_n take_v which_o you_o listen_v either_o acquit_v we_o or_o condemn_v he_o for_o if_o christ_n mean_v to_o assure_v the_o faith_n of_o none_o but_o of_o peter_n because_o he_o say_v to_o he_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v then_o do_v god_n promise_v his_o gracious_a assistance_n to_o none_o but_o to_o joshua_n when_o he_o say_v to_o he_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o and_o 13.5_o the_o apostle_n err_v in_o say_v it_o to_o all_o christian_n if_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o to_o all_o christian_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n then_o be_v it_o true_a in_o like_a sort_n that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o any_o child_n of_o god_n who_o satan_n have_v desire_v to_o sift_v and_o shake_v as_o he_o do_v peter_n and_o make_v he_o to_o deny_v christ_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n for_o he_o have_v say_v i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o any_o child_n of_o god_n then_o be_v it_o verify_v in_o all_o the_o apostle_n 17.12_o except_o the_o child_n of_o perdition_n wherefore_o christ_n by_o say_v of_o those_o word_n to_o p●ter_n give_v he_o no_o supremacy_n over_o the_o apostle_n hart._n i_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o in_o some_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v to_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o they_o fall_v as_o peter_n do_v yet_o i_o know_v not_o how_o i_o think_v i_o can_v be_v persuade_v but_o that_o it_o make_v somewhat_o for_o peter_n supremacy_n rainoldes_n no_o marvel_n for_o the_o noise_n of_o it_o have_v be_v so_o great_a and_o loud_o about_o your_o ear_n in_o the_o seminary_n at_o rheims_n and_o other_o popish_a school_n beyond_o sea_n that_o it_o have_v make_v you_o dull_a of_o hear_v and_o you_o can_v perceive_v 19.12_o the_o still_a &_o soft_a voice_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o scipion._n we_o read_v of_o they_o who_o dwell_v about_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o river_n nilus_n where_o it_o tumble_v down_o from_o the_o high_a mountain_n that_o they_o be_v make_v deaf_a by_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sound_n and_o noise_n of_o the_o water_n but_o tell_v i_o i_o pray_v do_v you_o think_v that_o christ_n make_v peter_n supreme_a head_n by_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o or_o strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n hart._n what_o a_o question_n be_v that_o why_o shall_v i_o mention_v it_o unless_o it_o prove_v his_o supremacy_n rainoldes_n it_o be_v a_o question_n for_o if_o christ_n make_v he_o supreme_a head_n by_o those_o word_n then_o the_o supreme_a head_n deny_v christ_n and_o that_o often_o and_o that_o with_o a_o oath_n too_o whereof_o a_o very_a dangerous_a conclusion_n will_v follow_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v yea_o that_o be_v more_o deny_v christ._n hart._n i_o say_v not_o that_o christ_n make_v he_o supreme_a head_n at_o that_o present_a time_n but_o prepare_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o make_v he_o supreme_a head_n after_o as_o d._n 8._o stapleton_n write_v that_o christ_n by_o those_o word_n establish_v peter_n faith_n conferret_fw-la before_o that_o he_o bestow_v the_o power_n of_o supreme_a head-ship_n upon_o he_o in_o deed_n for_o he_o give_v that_o power_n after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o he_o say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o those_o word_n of_o strengthen_v he_o speak_v before_o his_o death_n and_o do_v but_o 9_o insinuate_v therein_o &_o give_v a_o inkling_n that_o he_o will_v make_v he_o supreme_a head_n rainoldes_n you_o have_v say_v and_o your_o doctor_n have_v show_v herein_o a_o point_n of_o great_a wit_n than_o many_o of_o his_o fellow_n but_o as_o of_o great_a wit_n so_o of_o great_a spite_n in_o add_v thereunto_o that_o which_o now_o i_o touch_v 8._o that_o caluin_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o those_o word_n because_o he_o know_v well_o that_o they_o be_v so_o singular_a for_o peter_n supremacy_n they_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v avoid_v for_o 28._o caluin_n do_v mention_v they_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o point_n whether_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o your_o doctor_n witness_v himself_o that_o direct_o they_o concern_v that_o point_n the_o supremacy_n but_o by_o a_o inkling_n the_o strength_n thereof_o then_o as_o touch_v the_o supremacy_n do_v rest_n upon_o that_o whereof_o they_o give_v inkling_n it_o shall_v be_v do_v after_o that_o be_v upon_o the_o charge_n of_o feed_v lamb_n and_o sheep_n but_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o more_o to_o peter_n in_o that_o then_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v prove_v therefore_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n do_v raise_v no_o high_a throne_n for_o peter_n then_o for_o they_o much_o less_o if_o the_o prayer_n that_o christ_n make_v for_o peter_n be_v common_a unto_o he_o with_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o not_o with_o the_o apostle_n only_o wherefore_o this_o reason_n which_o be_v so_o strong_a in_o your_o eye_n must_v be_v strengthen_v by_o his_o brethren_n if_o he_o have_v any_o for_o sure_o he_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n too_o weak_a to_o strengthen_v they_o hart._n yes_o he_o have_v brethren_n and_o more_o peradventure_o than_o you_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v in_o the_o field_n as_o lusty_a as_o you_o be_v and_o think_v you_o can_v dispatch_v they_o all_o rainoldes_n not_o i_o save_v with_o the_o aide_n of_o elisaeus_n only_o 6.16_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v mo_z than_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o be_v they_o the_o four_o chapter_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o peter_n be_v entitle_v to_o imag●●●●_n to_o be_v prove_v 1_o by_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n to_o the_o apostleship_n 2_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o presidentship_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n 3_o and_o by_o paul_n journey_n take_v to_o see_v peter_n and_o his_o abode_n with_o he_o wherein_o as_o in_o other_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o equality_n of_o they_o all_o not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o one_o be_v show_v hart_n example_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o peter_n supreme-headship_a in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n division_n whereof_o we_o have_v record_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n even_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o pattern_n of_o church-government_n rainoldes_n the_o reason_n in_o deed_n which_o you_o gather_v thence_o be_v brethren_n to_o the_o former_a but_o they_o be_v no_o strong_a than_o the_o former_a be_v if_o you_o bring_v they_o forth_o into_o the_o field_n you_o shall_v perceive_v it_o hart._n there_o be_v many_o place_n but_o special_o two_o by_o which_o peter_n soveraintie_n over_o the_o apostle_n be_v manifest_o show_v for_o in_o 1.15_o the_o one_o he_o propose_v a_o election_n to_o be_v make_v of_o a_o new_a apostle_n into_o the_o room_n of_o judas_n in_o 15.7_o the_o other_o he_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v hold_v at_o jerusalem_n he_o speak_v first_o and_o conclude_v in_o it_o out_o of_o both_o the_o which_o i_o gather_v this_o reason_n s._n peter_n do_v practice_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o supreme_a head_n over_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o be_v their_o supreme_a head_n rainoldes_n now_o be_v you_o come_v to_o that_o which_o i_o have_v a_o eye_n too_o when_o i_o desire_v you_o in_o 2._o the_o begin_n of_o our_o conference_n to_o tell_v i_o what_o power_n you_o give_v unto_o the_o pope_n by_o call_v he_o supreme_a head_n for_o in_o this_o grass_n there_o lurk_v a_o snake_n which_o that_o you_o may_v see_v and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o gracious_a will_n of_o god_n avoid_v lest_o that_o you_o perish_v through_o his_o venoom_n i_o will_v ask_v you_o a_o question_n when_o you_o say_v praefat_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v caput_fw-la chief_a and_o supreme_a head_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n and_o precedent_n of_o counsel_n do_v you_o mean_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n be_v as_o the_o speaker_n with_o we_o in_o the_o parliament_n to_o propose_v matter_n to_o they_o and_o ask_v their_o judgement_n and_o gather_v their_o voice_n that_o thing_n may_v be_v orderly_o handle_v and_o enact_v by_o common_a consent_n hart._n as_o the_o speaker_n no._n but_o as_o the_o prince_n rather_o rainoldes_n yea_o i_o say_v to_o you_o and_o more_o than_o the_o prince_n for_o as_o thing_n in_o parliament_n can_v be_v enact_v without_o the_o prince_n consent_n so_o neither_o can_v the_o prince_n make_v act_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o and_o when_o they_o be_v make_v by_o consent_n of_o they_o all_o they_o can_v be_v repeal_v by_o the_o prince_n alone_o without_o
the_o chief_a proof_n of_o your_o supremacy_n which_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o you_o can_v bring_v with_o any_o show_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n give_v peter_n such_o supremacy_n if_o you_o will_v call_v it_o so_o that_o i_o be_o persuade_v pope_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o as_o he_o have_v already_o spend_v 2._o much_o upon_o scholar_n and_o 4._o somewhat_o upon_o soldier_n for_o maintenance_n of_o his_o state_n so_o he_o will_v rather_o spend_v his_o triple_a crown_n and_o all_o upon_o they_o than_o heretic_n shall_v force_v he_o to_o come_v out_o of_o his_o throne_n of_o majesty_n and_o submit_v his_o head_n to_o such_o a_o supremacy_n hart._n what_o tell_v you_o i_o of_o francis_n duaren_n who_o authority_n i_o regard_v not_o nor_o be_o to_o be_v press_v with_o it_o chief_o since_o he_o be_v a_o lawyer_n not_o a_o divine_a and_o whither_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a or_o not_o i_o know_v not_o i_o will_v prove_v by_o the_o ancient_a and_o holy_a learned_a father_n that_o peter_n have_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a supremacy_n over_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o two_o place_n of_o the_o act_n rainoldes_n i_o do_v not_o take_v duaren_n for_o the_o strength_n of_o my_o answer_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o same_o that_o you_o allege_v by_o the_o text_n and_o circumstance_n whereof_o i_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o peter_n have_v no_o high_a power_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o have_v either_o the_o speaker_n of_o our_o english_a parliament_n or_o to_o make_v the_o most_o of_o it_o the_o precedent_n of_o a_o court_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n which_o be_v duarenes_n similitude_n howbeit_o if_o i_o shall_v have_v use_v his_o authority_n to_o confirm_v it_o as_o well_o as_o i_o allege_v his_o word_n to_o open_v it_o you_o may_v not_o reject_v such_o a_o man_n so_o light_o for_o 〈◊〉_d a_o gardener_n as_o the_o proverb_n be_v have_v speak_v oft_o to_o very_o good_a purpose_n &_o 18.17_o jethro_n see_v more_o in_o somewhat_o then_o moses_n and_o duaren_n though_o a_o lawyer_n yet_o be_v not_o only_o skilful_a of_o the_o civil_a law_n which_o be_v a_o great_a help_n notwithstanding_o of_o wisdom_n in_o matter_n touch_v government_n but_o also_o of_o the_o canon_n whereof_o you_o may_v vouchsafe_v to_o count_v as_o of_o divinity_n doubtless_o your_o divinity_n will_v be_v cold_a without_o it_o beside_o he_o write_v that_o treatise_n to_o instruct_v student_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o be_v the_o fortress_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o he_o so_o deliver_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o it_o that_o lawyer_n among_o the_o protestant_n be_v offend_v &_o argentoruti_fw-la write_v against_o he_o for_o it_o but_o now_o thus_o you_o reward_n man_n it_o be_v call_v in_o question_n whether_o that_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a or_o no._n i_o assure_v you_o if_o you_o beware_v not_o you_o will_v make_v honest_a and_o well_o affect_v heart_n afraid_a to_o be_v catholic_n such_o as_o you_o mean_v by_o that_o word_n for_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v within_o any_o bound_n of_o modesty_n and_o truth_n &_o will_v not_o run_v headlong_o with_o you_o through_o thick_a &_o thin_a you_o will_v account_v of_o he_o either_o as_o a_o heretic_n or_o as_o one_o that_o savour_v of_o heresy_n at_o least_o but_o who_o be_v the_o father_n who_o you_o pretend_v against_o duaren_n to_o prove_v your_o supremacy_n out_o of_o those_o place_n of_o the_o act_n hart._n 13._o s._n chrysostome_n for_o the_o one_o s._n jerome_n for_o the_o other_o rainoldes_n and_o what_o do_v they_o say_v hart._n s._n 3._o chrysostome_n entreat_v of_o the_o fact_n of_o peter_n how_o he_o propose_v the_o election_n of_o a_o new_a apostle_n into_o the_o room_n of_o judas_n behold_v say_v he_o the_o zeal_n of_o peter_n how_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n how_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a in_o this_o assembly_n and_o every_o where_o begin_v to_o speak_v first_o of_o all_o afterward_o he_o praise_v peter_n for_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o common_a advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o disciple_n nothing_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n yet_o that_o peter_n may_v have_v choose_v a_o apostle_n yea_o alone_o without_o they_o he_o affirm_v plain_o what_o say_v he_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o peter_n himself_o to_o choose_v he_o yes_o it_o be_v lawful_a no_o doubt_n but_o he_o do_v it_o not_o lest_o that_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o gratify_v any_o man_n then_o he_o praise_v the_o modesty_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n consider_v say_v he_o how_o they_o grant_v the_o seat_n to_o he_o that_o be_v the_o primacy_n as_o 51._o otherwhere_o he_o call_v it_o neither_o doubt_n they_o any_o long_o debate_v amongst_o themselves_o to_o wit_n as_o they_o do_v once_o when_o christ_n converse_v with_o they_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a this_o be_v s._n chrysostom_n judgement_n of_o that_o place_n which_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n rainoldes_n this_o testimony_n of_o chrysostome_n do_v stand_v on_o two_o branch_n the_o one_o what_o peter_n do_v as_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o other_o what_o he_o may_v have_v do_v as_o chrysostome_n suppose_v that_o which_o peter_n do_v be_v grant_v but_o it_o prove_v not_o the_o supremacy_n he_o remember_v his_o duty_n he_o speak_v first_o of_o all_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o common_a advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o nothing_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n thus_o much_o i_o say_v of_o peter_n and_o do_v explain_v it_o out_o of_o duaren_n in_o duaren_n you_o think_v that_o it_o make_v against_o you_o and_o therefore_o refuse_v he_o do_v it_o make_v for_o you_o when_o it_o be_v in_o chrysostome_n that_o you_o bring_v he_o against_o duaren_n or_o be_v this_o the_o reason_n why_o you_o accept_v the_o one_o and_o refuse_v the_o other_o because_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n yield_v a_o certain_a primacy_n to_o peter_n may_v deceive_v the_o simple_a as_o though_o he_o mean_v that_o primacy_n which_o you_o call_v the_o supremacy_n but_o the_o word_n of_o duaren_n put_v so_o plain_a a_o difference_n between_o the_o two_o primacy_n that_o which_o peter_n have_v and_o the_o other_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v or_o will_v have_v that_o a_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v that_o peter_n primacy_n be_v not_o a_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o shall_v appear_v 3._o far_o if_o god_n will_v by_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n speak_v touch_a peter_n primacy_n and_o thus_o your_o proof_n fail_v in_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o peter_n do_v now_o that_o which_o peter_n may_v have_v do_v as_o chrysostome_n suppose_v will_v infer_v a_o great_a primacy_n than_o peter_n have_v if_o it_o be_v true_a but_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o not_o wherefore_o as_o the_o synod_n father_n report_n one_o of_o a_o other_o by_o 6._o your_o own_o confession_n that_o they_o write_v some_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o confute_v the_o adversary_n with_o who_o they_o have_v to_o deal_v &_o in_o these_o they_o err_v sometime_o and_o gather_v amiss_o likewise_o may_v i_o say_v that_o they_o write_v some_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o praise_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o stir_v up_o other_o to_o their_o virtue_n colligunt_fw-la wherein_o if_o their_o word_n shall_v be_v rigorous_o sift_v the_o truth_n be_v sometime_o overlash_v so_o 33._o chrysostome_n in_o the_o other_o place_n which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o act_n to_o commend_v the_o mildness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o james_n who_o leave_v the_o sharp_a speech_n to_o be_v use_v of_o peter_n and_o use_v himself_o the_o gentle_a do_v speak_v of_o he_o as_o be_v above_o peter_n in_o power_n and_o here_o to_o commend_v the_o modesty_n of_o peter_n because_o that_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o common_a advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o his_o brethren_n he_o say_v by_o the_o way_n of_o amplification_n that_o peter_n might_n himself_o have_v choose_v a_o apostle_n which_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o hart._n by_o way_n of_o amplification_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o praise_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n such_o colour_n you_o cast_v upon_o it_o but_o chrysostome_n say_v express_o that_o peter_n himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v alone_o may_v have_v choose_v he_o if_o he_o will_v and_o you_o with_o smooth_a word_n but_o in_o plain_a effect_n reply_v that_o he_o lie_v do_v father_n praise_v the_o saint_n so_o rainoldes_n it_o be_v a_o rule_n 2._o of_o your_o own_o and_o 1._o give_v by_o your_o jesuit_n that_o a_o man_n may_v lawful_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n so_o that_o he_o do_v it_o with_o modesty_n if_o any_o keep_v not_o
at_o 1_o jerusalem_n at_o 11.26_o antioch_n at_o 19.10_o ephesus_n at_o 28.30_o rome_n that_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d mother_n city_n as_o they_o be_v call_v religion_n may_v be_v spread_v abroad_o unto_o the_o daughter_n now_o because_o this_o residence_n in_o the_o mother-city_n be_v afterward_o supply_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o they_o therefore_o the_o father_n be_v wont_v oftentime_o to_o call_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o those_o city_n wherein_o they_o do_v abide_v most_o which_o they_o may_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n in_o their_o speech_n betoken_v in_o a_o general_a meaning_n any_o charge_n &_o oversight_n of_o other_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d scripture_n apply_v it_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o and_o in_o this_o sort_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v say_v as_o by_o episcopo_fw-la cyprian_a that_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o room_n of_o judas_n so_o by_o 2._o jerome_n that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n &_o by_o chrysostom_n that_o james_n be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la though_o whither_o it_o be_v or_o no_o yet_o that_o which_o i_o speak_v in_o defence_n of_o chrysostom_n be_v clear_v by_o himself_o from_o your_o reproach_n of_o a_o shift_n for_o he_o say_v that_o james_n 〈◊〉_d be_v bishop_n as_o they_o say_v which_o word_v as_o they_o say_v import_n that_o he_o speak_v it_o on_o the_o word_n of_o other_o most_o likely_a of_o clemens_n from_o who_o 1._o eusebius_n fetch_v it_o but_o if_o notwithstanding_o you_o reply_v that_o chrysostom_n allow_v that_o they_o say_v and_o suppose_a james_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n proper_o then_o his_o word_n have_v so_o much_o the_o great_a importance_n against_o your_o supremacy_n see_v that_o they_o give_v the_o principality_n to_o james_n in_o his_o own_o diocese_n and_o that_o above_o peter_n howbeit_o i_o will_v not_o take_v this_o advantage_n because_o i_o know_v that_o neither_o peter_n nor_o james_n give_v the_o definitive_a sentence_n but_o when_o they_o have_v speak_v their_o mind_n of_o the_o matter_n 28._o the_o council_n do_v define_v it_o and_o decree_v it_o with_o common_a judgement_n hart._n they_o do_v it_o with_o common_a judgement_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o theodoret_n show_v that_o peter_n as_o a_o prince_n have_v a_o great_a prerogative_n therein_o above_o the_o rest_n yea_o give_v definitive_a sentence_n to_o which_o the_o rest_n consent_v and_o as_o it_o be_v subscribe_v for_o he_o in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o leo_n affirm_v that_o paul_n do_v run_v to_o great_a peter_n to_o bring_v a_o resolution_n from_o he_o unto_o they_o who_o contend_v at_o antioch_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n rainoldes_n you_o may_v cite_v if_o you_o listen_v s._n 1._o isidore_n too_o for_o a_o other_o special_a prerogative_n of_o peter_n as_o good_a as_o this_o and_o ground_v likewise_o on_o the_o act_n which_o he_o allege_v to_o prove_v it_o to_o wit_n te●tantur_fw-la that_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n arise_v at_o antioch_n first_o through_o the_o preach_n of_o peter_n for_o though_o he_o be_v more_o direct_a against_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v that_o ●6_n the_o name_n of_o christian_n arise_v upon_o the_o preach_n not_o of_o peter_n but_o of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n yet_o be_v theodoret_n direct_v against_o it_o too_o by_o give_v as_o proper_a &_o peculiar_a to_o peter_n that_o which_o be_v common_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n 26.4_o who_o resolution_n 15.2_o he_o be_v send_v for_o and_o as_o isidore_n seem_v to_o have_v overshoot_v himself_o by_o slip_n of_o memory_n on_o too_o great_a a_o fancy_n perhaps_o towards_o peter_n in_o like_a sort_n theodoret_n seek_v to_o get_v the_o favour_n of_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o help_n he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o do_v serve_v his_o own_o cause_n in_o say_v that_o paul_n run_v to_o great_a peter_n that_o so_o he_o may_v run_v much_o more_o to_o great_a leo._n which_o word_n to_o have_v issue_v out_o from_o that_o humour_n his_o commentary_n on_o the_o scripture_n where_o he_o seek_v the_o truth_n and_o follow_v the_o text_n show_v for_o therein_o he_o say_v of_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n 2._o that_o they_o run_v not_o to_o great_a peter_n but_o to_o the_o great_a apostle_n and_o ephes._n have_v a_o resolution_n from_o they_o of_o the_o question_n about_o the_o keep_v of_o the_o law_n howbeit_o if_o theodoret_n word_n unto_o leo_n suffer_v no_o exception_n the_o most_o be_v that_o peter_n pronounce_v the_o definitive_a sentence_n as_o precedent_n not_o give_v it_o as_o prince_n but_o the_o scripture_n itself_o by_o the_o rule_n whereof_o his_o word_n must_v be_v try_v make_v no_o more_o for_o peter_n presidentshippe_n then_o for_o james_n and_o whosoever_o be_v precedent_n it_o show_v that_o neither_o james_n nor_o peter_n but_o the_o council_n give_v the_o definitive_a sentence_n so_o well_o it_o prove_v that_o which_o you_o undertake_v to_o prove_v concern_v peter_n that_o he_o have_v as_o full_a power_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o prince_n have_v in_o a_o parliament_n yea_o or_o the_o pope_n in_o a_o council_n harte_n it_o prove_v that_o well-enough_a though_o not_o to_o you_o chief_a if_o other_o place_n thereof_o be_v weigh_v withal_o division_n for_o the_o singular_a power_n of_o peter_n be_v declare_v also_o by_o s._n paul_n in_o that_o he_o say_v to_o the_o galatian_n 1.18_o then_o after_o three_o year_n i_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n and_o tarry_v with_o he_o fifteen_o day_n rainoldes_n the_o singular_a power_n of_o peter_n in_o which_o word_n by_o what_o reason_n because_o he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v he_o or_o because_o he_o go_v after_o three_o year_n or_o because_o he_o stay_v with_o he_o fifteen_o day_n hart._n the_o reason_n consist_v 13._o in_o that_o which_o paul_n do_v &_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o he_o do_v it_o for_o he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_fw-la to_o see_v peter_n why_o but_o to_o do_v he_o honour_n as_o 1._o jerom_n say_v in_o his_o commentary_n and_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o austin_n peter_n be_v say_v he_o of_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o paul_n write_v then_o after_o three_o year_n and_o so_o forth_o august_n and_o 87._o chrysostome_n because_o peter_n say_v he_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o chief_a and_o top_n of_o the_o company_n therefore_o paul_n go_v up_o to_o see_v he_o above_o the_o rest_n because_o it_o be_v meet_v say_v ●_o ambrose_n that_o he_o shall_v desire_v to_o see_v peter_n unto_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o church_n which_o also_o haeret_fw-la tertullian_n affirm_v that_o he_o do_v of_o duty_n and_o right_n nor_o otherwise_o gal._n theodoret_n he_o give_v say_v he_o that_o honour_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o it_o be_v fit_v he_o shall_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n 18._o gregory_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o paul_n the_o apostle_n be_v the_o young_a brother_n and_o s._n 1._o austin_n a_o apostle_n make_v after_o peter_n who_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v conspicuous_a and_o preeminent_a with_o excellent_a grace_n in_o peter_n rainoldes_n you_o bring_v in_o witness_n not_o necessary_a to_o prove_v a_o thing_n not_o deny_v for_o that_o paul_n be_v as_o apostle_n in_o time_n after_o peter_n and_o so_o his_o young_a brother_n as_o gregory_n austin_n and_o deferendi_fw-la ambrose_n say_v that_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n for_o honour_n and_o reverence_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o he_o as_o it_o be_v in_o jerom_n chrysostome_n and_o theodoret_n that_o he_o do_v this_o of_o duty_n and_o right_n what_o right_a and_o duty_n tert._n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o show_v his_o concord_n with_o he_o which_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o tertullian_n all_o this_o will_v i_o grant_v you_o 2.2_o the_o scripture_n teach_v as_o much_o what_o need_v the_o father_n to_o prove_v it_o hart._n will_v you_o grant_v all_o that_o which_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o father_n then_o will_v you_o grant_v that_o protestant_n be_v in_o a_o error_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o for_o they_o avouch_v plain_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n and_o call_v he_o the_o mouth_n the_o prince_n the_o top_n of_o the_o apostle_n rainoldes_n alas_o you_o be_v agree_v i_o think_v to_o go_v through_o with_o the_o scripture_n first_o &_o afterward_o come_v to_o the_o father_n i_o wiss_v they_o will_v give_v you_o small_a cause_n of_o triumph_v over_o the_o protestant_n when_o you_o shall_v bring_v their_o force_n out_o into_o the_o field_n and_o see_v with_o who_o they_o join_v with_o you_o or_o with_o us._n but_o of_o the_o rest_n then_o now_o i_o grant_v you_o so_o much_o as_o do_v concern_v the_o point_n for_o
proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v they_o namely_o that_o paul_n go_v to_o see_v peter_n for_o a_o reverend_a respect_n and_o honour_n of_o his_o person_n but_o i_o deny_v the_o argument_n which_o you_o infer_v thereof_o that_o peter_n have_v therefore_o a_o singular_a power_n whereby_o you_o mean_v the_o supremacy_n you_o shall_v have_v lay_v the_o father_n if_o you_o will_v needs_o bestow_v they_o on_o this_o which_o be_v deny_v not_o on_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v but_o this_o be_v the_o world_n man_n will_v rather_o give_v to_o the_o rich_a who_o need_v not_o then_o to_o the_o poor_a who_o need_n hart._n i_o think_v you_o will_v rather_o have_v deny_v that_o than_o this_o for_o this_o be_v clear_a of_o itself_o and_o need_v no_o proof_n the_o common_a use_n of_o man_n show_v it_o for_o they_o give_v honour_n and_o reverence_n to_o they_o in_o who_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o superiority_n rainoldes_n perhaps_o a_o superiority_n yet_o not_o a_o supremacy_n hart._n if_o peter_n be_v paul_n superior_a in_o power_n the_o supremacy_n be_v prove_v rainoldes_n if_o in_o power_n you_o say_v somewhat_o though_o nevertheless_o he_o may_v be_v full_a high_a in_o power_n and_o yet_o come_v short_a of_o your_o supremacy_n but_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o he_o in_o some_o thing_n else_o and_o not_o in_o power_n hart._n that_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o he_o in_o power_n i_o prove_v s._n peter_n have_v honour_n give_v to_o he_o of_o paul_n therefore_o he_o be_v in_o power_n above_o he_o rainoldes_n evil_a news_n for_o husband_n that_o have_v shrew_n to_o their_o wife_n if_o this_o argument_n be_v good_a for_o 3.7_o they_o be_v command_v to_o give_v honour_n to_o the_o woman_n as_o to_o the_o weak_a vessel_n whereof_o by_o your_o logic_n the_o wife_n may_v claim_v authority_n and_o power_n above_o their_o husband_n s._n peter_n see_v not_o this_o consequence_n he_o do_v not_o think_v on_o his_o supremacy_n for_o although_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o husband_n shall_v give_v honour_n to_o his_o wife_n yet_o he_o call_v the_o wife_n the_o weak_a vessel_n not_o the_o strong_a and_o 3.1_o he_o command_v wife_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o husband_n that_o be_v to_o be_v inferior_a i_o trow_v in_o power_n unto_o they_o which_o s._n 11.10_o paul_n note_v also_o more_o express_o when_o he_o say_v the_o woman_n ought_v to_o have_v power_n upon_o her_o head_n hart._n this_o answer_n do_v not_o weaken_v the_o strength_n of_o my_o argument_n for_o the_o name_n of_o honour_n when_o husband_n be_v command_v to_o give_v it_o to_o their_o wife_n be_v take_v improper_o but_o honour_n as_o i_o take_v it_o as_o paul_n give_v it_o to_o peter_n be_v use_v in_o his_o proper_a sense_n to_o signify_v a_o reverence_n the_o which_o a_o inferior_a do_v owe_v to_o a_o superior_a a_o subject_n to_o he_o that_o be_v in_o power_n above_o he_o rainoldes_n the_o honour_n which_o husband_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v unto_o their_o wife_n as_o to_o the_o weak_a vessel_n do_v signify_v a_o honest_a care_n and_o regard_n of_o bear_v with_o their_o weakness_n provide_v for_o their_o want_n and_o show_v all_o husbandly_a love_n and_o duty_n to_o they_o such_o a_o reverence_n as_o you_o mention_v it_o do_v not_o signify_v i_o grant_v yet_o do_v it_o signify_v a_o reverence_n which_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o love_n and_o duty_n that_o their_o husband_n owe_v they_o 3.3_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o timothee_n honour_n the_o widow_n which_o be_v widow_n in_o deed_n he_o mean_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v charitable_o relieve_v but_o this_o relief_n be_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o reverent_o be_v regard_v too_o for_o you_o be_v deceive_v if_o you_o think_v that_o none_o be_v bind_v to_o reverence_v other_o but_o only_o the_o inferior_n their_o superior_n in_o power_n the_o gentile_n be_v teach_v by_o nature_n itself_o that_o a_o reverence_n be_v due_a to_o every_o state_n of_o man_n 14._o to_o child_n with_o a_o heed_n that_o no_o unhonest_a thing_n be_v do_v in_o their_o presence_n because_o their_o tenderness_n be_v prove_v to_o learn_v it_o 4._o to_o old_a man_n with_o a_o honour_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o wisdom_n their_o experience_n their_o gravity_n wherewith_o the_o gray_a hair_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v accompany_v 1._o to_o all_o but_o chief_o to_o the_o best_a with_o a_o modest_a account_n of_o their_o good_a opinion_n and_o a_o honest_a desire_n to_o be_v approve_v of_o they_o wherefore_o if_o your_o argument_n do_v stand_v upon_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o honour_n you_o shall_v perceive_v yourself_o that_o it_o can_v never_o prove_v a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n for_o honour_v be_v a_o outward_a profession_n and_o testimony_n of_o a_o reverend_a opinion_n which_o we_o have_v conceive_v of_o some_o kind_n of_o excellency_n in_o he_o to_o who_o we_o give_v it_o so_o the_o chief_a honour_n be_v due_a unto_o 7.12_o god_n the_o father_n of_o light_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o excellency_n and_o after_o he_o to_o man_n in_o several_a degree_n according_a to_o their_o several_a estate_n and_o gift_n of_o excellency_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v bless_v they_o to_o 2.17_o the_o king_n as_o 13._o preeminent_a and_o 6.1_o all_o that_o govern_v under_o he_o to_o 5.17_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o more_o the_o better_a they_o do_v their_o duty_n to_o 20.12_o they_o who_o nature_n most_o do_v bind_v we_o our_o father_n and_o mother_n to_o 19.32_o the_o age_a 41.39_o the_o wise_a 6.3_o the_o virtuous_a 5.34_o the_o learned_a in_o a_o word_n to_o 2.17_o all_o man_n but_o chief_o 12.24_o to_o the_o faithful_a as_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n none_o so_o base_a but_o have_v a_o excellency_n the_o excellency_n of_o a_o christian._n and_o hereby_o appear_v the_o weakness_n of_o your_o argument_n that_o paul_n be_v inferior_a to_o peter_n in_o power_n because_o he_o give_v he_o honour_n do_v not_o 2.19_o solomon_n in_o his_o majesty_n give_v honour_n to_o his_o mother_n and_o be_v not_o he_o the_o king_n and_o she_o a_o subject_n to_o he_o be_v we_o not_o all_o teach_v 12.10_o to_o go_v one_o before_o a_o other_o in_o give_v honour_n as_o well_o the_o rich_a as_o the_o poor_a as_o well_o the_o high_a as_o the_o low_a what_o a_o proud_a and_o arrogant_a mind_n have_v 13._o that_o body_n unless_o his_o mind_n and_o tongue_n dissent_v who_o think_v that_o he_o must_v give_v honour_n to_o no_o man_n but_o to_o they_o only_o that_o be_v in_o power_n above_o he_o belike_o this_o divinity_n be_v learn_v out_o of_o that_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n which_o i_o touch_v afore_o 1._o that_o the_o pope_n do_v do_v reverence_n to_o no_o man_n of_o duty_n and_o right_n for_o than_o he_o be_v afraid_a lest_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v that_o some_o man_n be_v in_o power_n above_o he_o yet_o 13._o in_o the_o same_o book_n to_o see_v a_o good_a nature_n we_o read_v that_o 1●68_n he_o do_v honour_n fridericke_n the_o emperor_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o place_v he_o next_o unto_o himself_o above_o all_o the_o cardinal_n and_o pedes_fw-la the_o place_n in_o which_o the_o emperor_n do_v sit_v be_v no_o low_a than_o the_o place_n where_o the_o pope_n do_v hold_v his_o foot_n now_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n declare_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o he_o in_o power_n and_o yet_o the_o pope_n maiestate_fw-la do_v honour_v he_o paul_n therefore_o may_v have_v be_v above_o peter_n in_o power_n though_o he_o do_v honour_n peter_n if_o he_o may_v the_o honour_n which_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n do_v strike_v no_o stroke_n for_o the_o supremacy_n wherefore_o you_o may_v dimisse_fw-la it_o as_o a_o coward_n out_o of_o the_o field_n not_o fit_n to_o fight_v the_o pope_n battle_n do_v not_o this_o my_o answer_n touch_v honour_n take_v proper_o or_o will_v you_o set_v the_o emperor_n above_o the_o pope_n in_o power_n or_o be_v it_o a_o lie_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v honour_v he_o hart._n you_o triumph_v over_o i_o at_o every_o small_a occasion_n as_o though_o you_o have_v a_o conquest_n but_o you_o see_v not_o your_o own_o absurdity_n and_o folly_n you_o speak_v erewhile_o of_o the_o apostle_n as_o equal_v in_o power_n now_o you_o speak_v of_o paul_n as_o if_o he_o be_v above_o peter_n like_o a_o pope_n above_o a_o emperor_n and_o i_o do_v frame_v my_o reason_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o you_o do_v bring_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n to_o kill_v it_o will_v you_o subdue_v we_o with_o such_o warrior_n rainoldes_n i_o will_v fain_o triumph_v not_o over_o you_o but_o over_o your_o error_n if_o i_o can_v the_o strength_n of_o my_o cause_n and_o valour_n of_o my_o proof_n make_v i_o the_o chéerefull_a in_o deal_v with_o the_o
dastard_a which_o you_o set_v against_o they_o my_o former_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n agree_v well_o with_o these_o of_o peter_n and_o paul_n for_o i_o say_v not_o that_o paul_n be_v above_o peter_n but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v be_v above_o he_o in_o power_n for_o all_o the_o honour_n which_o he_o give_v he_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v your_o reason_n but_o if_o my_o example_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n do_v cause_v you_o to_o mistake_v i_o you_o may_v take_v a_o other_o and_o fit_a for_o the_o purpose_n the_o college_n apostolic_a as_o 8._o the_o pope_n do_v call_v they_o i_o mean_v the_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n who_o though_o they_o be_v in_o state_n order_n and_o live_n one_o above_o a_o other_o 1._o yet_o deferendo_fw-la in_o all_o thing_n and_o with_o all_o courtesy_n they_o all_o give_v high_a reverence_n one_o unto_o a_o other_o and_o when_o any_o of_o they_o do_v come_v into_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o pope_n holiness_n to_o say_v his_o devotion_n he_o turn_v towards_o the_o cardinal_n of_o his_o own_o order_n and_o go_v not_o direct_o to_o his_o own_o place_n unless_o he_o be_v the_o low_a but_o beginning_n at_o the_o low_a velit_fw-la as_o though_o he_o will_v abide_v there_o he_o be_v desire_v &_o entreat_v of_o every_o one_o to_o go_v high_o until_o he_o come_v direct_o to_o his_o own_o place_n unless_o he_o be_v the_o low_a &_o himself_o iterum_fw-la demure_o once_o &_o again_o desire_v he_o who_o be_v next_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o will_v go_v before_o he_o &_o residet_fw-la at_o length_n he_o sit_v down_o in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v a_o foul_a trouble_n to_o make_v so_o much_o ado_n at_o the_o come_n in_o of_o every_o cardinal_n to_o prayer_n chief_o when_o prayer_n be_v begin_v yet_o to_o show_v how_o modest_o they_o think_v of_o themselves_o and_o how_o they_o honour_v one_o a_o other_o pontifice_fw-la every_o one_o that_o come_v after_o other_o do_v it_o whither_o the_o pope_n be_v there_o or_o no._n out_o of_o doubt_n cardinal_n man_n of_o such_o wisdom_n will_v not_o commit_v this_o folly_n if_o every_o one_o who_o they_o honour_v must_v be_v above_o they_o in_o power_n but_o you_o deal_v injurious_o with_o i_o to_o say_v that_o you_o frame_v your_o reason_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o i_o bring_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n to_o kill_v it_o for_o neither_o do_v you_o ground_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o on_o a_o circumstance_n observe_v by_o the_o father_n that_o paul_n go_v to_o peter_n of_o reverence_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o i_o slay_v the_o reason_n which_o you_o make_v thereof_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o scripture_n i_o use_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n but_o as_o a_o irish_a lackey_n to_o cut_v off_o a_o dead_a man_n head_n i_o will_v not_o have_v vouchsafe_v as_o much_o as_o to_o name_v he_o but_o to_o cast_v the_o doong_n of_o your_o solemnity_n in_o your_o face_n and_o to_o show_v the_o fondness_n of_o a_o popish_a reason_n by_o practice_n of_o a_o papal_a mockery_n though_o i_o see_v not_o why_o you_o shall_v prefer_v so_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n before_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n for_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n speak_v more_o good_a of_o the_o pope_n in_o one_o leaf_n then_o both_o the_o other_o do_v throughout_o all_o their_o volume_n and_o privilegi●_n it_o be_v solemn_o print_v at_o rome_n with_o peter_n picture_n in_o the_o front_n and_o the_o key_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n write_v about_o he_o as_o a_o book_n of_o great_a account_n where_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o vatican_n library_n and_o can_v come_v into_o the_o light_n notwithstanding_o if_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o yield_v yourself_o prisoner_n to_o the_o father_n as_o gentleman_n &_o think_v the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n to_o be_v a_o rascal_n soldier_n who_o you_o disdain_v to_o yield_v unto_o behold_v your_o own_o witness_n who_o make_v not_o paul_n inferior_a to_o peter_n otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o apostleship_n the_o one_o make_v first_o the_o other_o last_o s._n jerome_n who_o put_v 2._o a_o equality_n between_o they_o though_o paul_n do_v honour_v he_o 1._o as_o a_o apostle_n before_o he_o s._n 1._o chrysostome_n who_o pronounce_v that_o paul_n to_o say_v no_o more_o of_o he_o be_v peter_n peer_n in_o dignity_n s._n ●_o ambrose_n who_o give_v a_o primacy_n to_o they_o both_o and_o say_v that_o paul_n be_v even_o such_o a_o other_o as_o peter_n s._n 1._o austin_n who_o declare_v their_o authority_n to_o have_v be_v equal_a and_o that_o for_o paul_n honour_n what_o he_o want_v in_o time_n be_v supply_v by_o christ_n glory_n in_o that_o he_o make_v he_o a_o apostle_n not_o as_o the_o rest_n upon_o the_o earth_n but_o when_o he_o reign_v now_o in_o majesty_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v by_o the_o same_o father_n who_o word_n touch_v the_o honour_n that_o paul_n give_v to_o peter_n your_o 1●_n doctor_n set_v in_o a_o beadrole_n as_o though_o in_o their_o judgement_n paul_n acknowledge_v peter_n his_o supreme_a head_n thereby_o wherein_o you_o may_v perceive_v both_o his_o deceitful_a deal_n that_o allege_v their_o word_n as_o set_v one_o above_o the_o other_o who_o in_o express_a word_n do_v make_v one_o equal_a to_o the_o other_o and_o your_o exposition_n how_o jump_o they_o meet_v with_o the_o father_n who_o gather_v a_o equality_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n whence_o you_o conclude_v peter_n supremacy_n over_o paul_n hart._n how_o the_o father_n all_o agree_v with_o one_o consent_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n it_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o as_o for_o the_o circumstance_n which_o i_o observe_v out_o of_o they_o touch_v the_o fact_n of_o paul_n y●_z when_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n he_o go_v of_o reverence_n to_o honour_v he_o i_o do_v not_o account_v so_o great_o thereof_o as_o of_o the_o fact_n itself_o nor_o urge_v i_o the_o father_n so_o much_o observe_v that_o as_o the_o report_n of_o this_o make_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o set_v it_o forth_o with_o so_o lively_a word_n as_o if_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n to_o paint_v out_o peter_n primacy_n 1.18_o then_o after_o three_o year_n i_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n say_v paul_n to_o see_v peter_n and_o tarry_v with_o he_o fifteen_o day_n mark_v his_o word_n i_o pray_v and_o see_v what_o weight_n they_o carry_v with_o they_o he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n so_o far_o so_o long_o a_o journey_n and_o he_o go_v notwithstanding_o his_o great_a affair_n ecclesiastical_a and_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n not_o in_o the_o vulgar_a manner_n but_o as_o s._n 1._o chrysostom_n note_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n import_v to_o behold_v he_o as_o man_n behold_v a_o thing_n or_o person_n of_o name_n excellency_n and_o majesty_n neither_o do_v he_o go_v only_o to_o see_v he_o but_o he_o abide_v with_o he_o also_o to_o fill_v himself_o with_o a_o perfect_a view_n of_o his_o behaviour_n and_o he_o abide_v with_o he_o no_o common_a time_n but_o fifteen_o day_n fiftene_o day_n a_o great_a matter_n and_o more_o than_o many_o will_v think_v who_o do_v not_o search_v the_o depth_n of_o scripture_n in_o such_o estimation_n be_v peter_n with_o paul_n and_o will_v you_o yet_o deny_v his_o primacy_n rainoldes_n king_n apophthegm_n agesilaus_n when_o one_o praise_v a_o orator_n that_o he_o can_v amplify_v thing_n and_o make_v they_o of_o small_a to_o seem_v great_a i_o say_v he_o will_v never_o count_v he_o a_o good_a shoemaker_n who_o will_v put_v a_o great_a shoe_n upon_o a_o small_a foot_n you_o play_v the_o orator_n m._n hart_n with_o your_o amplification_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o you_o pass_v the_o shoemaker_n of_o agesilaus_n for_o you_o do_v not_o only_o put_v a_o great_a shoe_n upon_o a_o small_a foot_n but_o you_o stretch_v the_o leather_n with_o your_o ●éeth_n too_o and_o yet_o when_o you_o have_v wéery_v yourself_o with_o stretch_v it_o you_o will_v have_v stretch_v it_o in_o vain_a for_o though_o your_o shoe_n be_v too_o great_a for_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n yet_o will_v it_o be_v too_o small_a for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n hart._n we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n now_o but_o of_o peter_n why_o stray_v you_o from_o the_o point_n rainoldes_n i_o think_v they_o have_v be_v thing_n both_o of_o one_o nature_n and_o differ_v in_o name_n only_o but_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o peter_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o shoe_n which_o you_o make_v be_v too_o great_a for_o his_o foot_n i_o will_v show_v it_o by_o a_o plain_a demonstration_n to_o the_o
their_o own_o charge_n to_o go_v to_o see_v the_o pope_n under_o the_o colour_n of_o paul_n example_n and_o to_o hide_v this_o art_n it_o be_v a_o other_o point_n of_o art_n if_o it_o be_v know_v it_o be_v nought_o worth_a for_o what_o be_v these_o great_a affair_n ecclesiastical_a which_o paul_n omit_v to_o see_v peter_n forsooth_o 9.24_o at_o damascus_n the_o jew_n lie_v in_o wait_n and_o watch_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n day_n and_o night_n that_o they_o may_v kill_v he_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o be_v convey_v away_o by_o the_o wall_n in_o the_o night_n time_n the_o disciple_n let_v he_o down_o in_o a_o basket_n and_o so_o he_o escape_v to_o jerusalem_n these_o be_v the_o affair_n the_o great_a affair_n ecclesiastical_a the_o which_o notwithstanding_o paul_n go_v from_o damascus_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n wherein_o he_o have_v a_o reverend_a regard_n to_o the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n as_o you_o say_v as_o peregrination_n a_o friend_n of_o you_o say_v he_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o peter_n whether_o of_o you_o apply_v the_o place_n to_o better_a purpose_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o text_n it_o may_v be_v a_o question_n but_o in_o show_v it_o seem_v to_o make_v more_o for_o pilgrimage_n then_o for_o the_o supremacy_n hart._n see_v what_o wrong_v you_o do_v to_o that_o learned_a man_n he_o say_v that_o when_o paul_n go_v to_o see_v peter_n he_o make_v a_o certain_a pilgrimage_n and_o you_o report_v he_o to_o have_v say_v that_o he_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n rainoldes_n he_o make_v a_o certain_a pilgrimage_n i_o cry_v you_o mercy_n i_o think_v he_o will_v have_v prove_v that_o kind_n of_o pilgrimage_n which_o our_o church_n reprove_v and_o so_o he_o mean_v to_o do_v at_o least_o he_o pretend_v it_o but_o in_o prove_v it_o he_o dali_v like_o a_o sophister_n with_o a_o certain_a pilgrimage_n such_o as_o our_o church_n allow_v you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o i_o come_v from_o oxford_n in_o pilgrimage_n to_o you_o in_o a_o certain_a pilgrimage_n and_o he_o be_v overséene_a that_o among_o example_n of_o pilgrimage_n in_o scripture_n he_o do_v not_o mention_n 47.9_o jacob_n who_o say_v that_o he_o spend_v his_o life_n time_n in_o pilgrimage_n yea_o and_o that_o his_o father_n spend_v in_o their_o pilgrimage_n long_o time_n than_o he_o but_o whatsoever_o show_v the_o fact_n of_o paul_n have_v for_o a_o certain_a pilgrimage_n in_o that_o he_o go_v to_o see_v peter_n it_o have_v no_o show_n at_o all_o for_o peter_n supremacy_n nay_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o paul_n in_o that_o point_n do_v drive_v flat_a against_o it_o as_o it_o have_v appear_v in_o 1._o part_n thereof_o already_o wherefore_o you_o be_v abuse_v by_o they_o who_o send_v you_o thither_o you_o shall_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v contain_v yourself_o within_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o your_o two_o place_n in_o the_o first_o and_o the_o fiftéenth_n have_v not_o force_n enough_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o you_o will_v you_o may_v in_o steed_n thereof_o have_v take_v two_o other_o out_o of_o the_o eight_o &_o the_o eleven_o which_o have_v force_n enough_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o you_o shall_v for_o in_o the_o one_o 8.14_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n send_v peter_n and_o john_n to_o the_o people_n of_o samaria_n to_o strengthen_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n through_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o other_o 11.3_o the_o apostle_n and_o brethren_n that_o be_v in_o jury_n call_v peter_n to_o a_o account_n when_o he_o have_v preach_v to_o cornelius_n why_o he_o go_v in_o to_o man_n uncircumcised_a and_o do_v eat_v with_o they_o hart._n alack_o you_o imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a power_n with_o peter_n because_o they_o send_v he_o abroad_o in_o commission_n and_o ask_v he_o a_o count_n of_o that_o which_o he_o do_v poor_a reason_n god_n wot_v for_o a_o inferior_a may_v entreat_v his_o superior_a to_o do_v his_o business_n for_o he_o and_o special_o a_o body_n politic_a or_o a_o corporation_n may_v choose_v their_o head_n and_o send_v he_o as_o citizen_n may_v send_v their_o mayor_n to_o the_o prince_n or_o parliament_n though_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o city_n because_o he_o may_v be_v more_o fit_a to_o do_v their_o business_n and_o as_o they_o may_v send_v he_o so_o may_v they_o ask_v a_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v and_o call_v he_o to_o account_v of_o it_o ween_v you_o that_o the_o cardinal_n may_v not_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v this_o or_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v convenient_a for_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v think_v his_o state_n to_o be_v abase_v if_o they_o inquire_v of_o he_o why_o he_o do_v this_o or_o that_o perhaps_o you_o ween_v so_o because_o you_o know_v neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o the_o cardinal_n but_o what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o your_o own_o self_n do_v not_o your_o seniors_n in_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la college_n send_v abroad_o your_o precedent_n about_o your_o college_n business_n do_v he_o not_o give_v you_o a_o account_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v do_v or_o if_o he_o give_v it_o not_o may_v you_o not_o ask_v it_o of_o he_o and_o be_v he_o therefore_o not_o your_o head_n rainoldes_n yes_o he_o be_v our_o head_n but_o he_o be_v such_o a_o head_n that_o your_o head_n of_o rome_n have_v rather_o you_o shall_v loose_v your_o head_n than_o you_o shall_v so_o behead_v his_o power_n i_o tell_v you_o so_o much_o chapter_n before_o in_o effect_n and_o make_v it_o plain_a unto_o you_o by_o duarens_n similitude_n of_o the_o precedent_n of_o a_o court_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n name_v the_o head_n of_o the_o court_n you_o may_v have_v conceive_v the_o same_o of_o our_o precedent_n and_o think_v his_o headship_n as_o unfit_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o your_o purpose_n as_o you_o think_v the_o other_o for_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o statute_n by_o they_o we_o send_v he_o out_o and_o ask_v account_n of_o that_o he_o do_v no_o statute_n bind_v your_o pope_n but_o his_o lust_n be_v his_o law_n and_o what_o he_o will_v that_o be_v holy_a we_o may_v deprive_v our_o precedent_n if_o he_o shall_v commit_v any_o heinous_a crime_n as_o murder_v or_o adultery_n your_o pope_n although_o he_o be_v as_o wilful_a a_o murderer_n and_o as_o notorious_a a_o adulterer_n as_o pope_n 8._o john_n the_o twelve_o yea_o though_o he_o be_v take_v in_o most_o horrible_a incest_n and_o villainy_n of_o all_o sort_n yet_o a_o council_n may_v not_o depose_v he_o no_o not_o the_o emperor_n with_o a_o council_n it_o be_v true_a that_o otho_n the_o emperor_n do_v depose_v he_o in_o a_o council_n assemble_v of_o purpose_n thereunto_o but_o your_o jesuit_n doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o emperor_n do_v it_o 103._o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la not_o the_o jure_fw-la 5._o of_o a_o good_a zeal_n not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n wherefore_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o use_v these_o similitude_n of_o precedent_n in_o college_n &_o mayor_n in_o city_n &_o head_n in_o corporation_n or_o if_o you_o will_v use_v they_o yet_o use_v they_o to_o the_o simple_a who_o such_o similitude_n may_v deceive_v but_o use_v they_o not_o to_o we_o who_o see_v the_o dissimilitude_n of_o they_o and_o can_v by_o god_n grace_n discern_v a_o fish_n from_o a_o serpent_n do_v you_o think_v yourself_o i_o pray_v in_o good_a sooth_n that_o peter_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o pope_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n hart._n why_o ask_v you_o i_o that_o as_o though_o i_o speak_v not_o what_o i_o think_v rainoldes_n it_o will_v be_v strange_a news_n to_o hear_v that_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v send_v the_o pope_n in_o embassage_n &_o make_v he_o as_o it_o be_v legate_n a_o latere_fw-la chief_o to_o pray_v for_o man_n convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o preach_v unto_o they_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n send_v peter_n 25._o to_o do_v these_o thing_n you_o seem_v to_o say_v they_o do_v it_o by_o entreaty_n be_v it_o and_o as_o a_o corporation_n may_v send_v their_o head_n about_o their_o business_n because_o he_o be_v more_o fit_a to_o do_v it_o but_o may_v the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n send_v the_o pope_n abroad_o by_o the_o like_o entreaty_n unless_o perhaps_o you_o make_v this_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o in_o other_o corporation_n the_o head_n sometime_o be_v fit_a but_o the_o pope_n be_v fit_a for_o no_o business_n of_o the_o church_n than_o any_o of_o his_o corporation_n howbeit_o even_o of_o that_o too_o it_o follow_v in_o part_n that_o peter_n be_v not_o thorough_o as_o pope_n in_o the_o former_a point_n
as_o for_o the_o late_a of_o call_v he_o to_o account_v although_o your_o good_a ween_v of_o the_o pope_n persuade_v you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o think_v his_o state_n to_o be_v abase_v if_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v ask_v he_o why_o he_o do_v this_o or_o that_o yet_o they_o who_o know_v he_o better_o a_o great_a deal_n than_o you_o and_o love_v he_o so_o well_o that_o they_o will_v not_o belie_v he_o do_v witness_n not_o only_o by_o word_n but_o by_o writing_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v deal_v withal_o by_o his_o inferior_n as_o peter_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o mean_v not_o your_o canonist_n in_o who_o glossa_fw-la gloze_n it_o go_v for_o a_o famous_a rule_n that_o none_o may_v say_v unto_o the_o pope_n facis_fw-la sir_n why_o do_v you_o so_o but_o i_o mean_v the_o learn_a and_o best_a of_o your_o divine_n who_o set_v the_o church_n above_o the_o pope_n in_o authority_n mislike_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o council_n of_o who_o to_o name_n one_o for_o many_o john_n ferus_fw-la a_o friar_n of_o s._n francis_n order_n but_o godly_a than_o franciscanus_n the_o common_a sort_n entreat_v in_o his_o commentary_n write_v on_o the_o act_n of_o the_o example_n of_o peter_n how_o he_o be_v require_v to_o render_v a_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v make_v this_o note_n upon_o it_o 11._o peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o disdain_v it_o because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v not_o a_o lord_n but_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o lady_n of_o the_o house_n peter_n a_o servant_n and_o minister_n wherefore_o the_o church_n may_v not_o only_o exact_v a_o account_n of_o her_o minister_n but_o also_o depose_v they_o &_o reject_v they_o altogether_o if_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a sic_fw-la so_o do_v they_o olim_fw-la of_o old_a time_n est_fw-la very_o often_o concilijs_fw-la in_o counsel_n but_o pontifices_fw-la wicked_a bishop_n nunc_fw-la now_o volunt_fw-la will_v not_o be_v reprove_v no_o not_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v order_v by_o it_o as_o though_o they_o be_v lord_n not_o minister_n therefore_o confunduotur_fw-la they_o be_v confound_v of_o all_o and_o each_o in_o several_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n do_v you_o know_v what_o bishop_n they_o be_v who_o refuse_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n who_o say_v they_o be_v above_o the_o council_n who_o may_v judge_v all_o and_o none_o may_v judge_v they_o this_o preacher_n a_o preacher_n of_o your_o own_o not_o we_o do_v call_v they_o wicked_a bishop_n the_o lord_n of_o his_o mercy_n make_v his_o word_n a_o prophecy_n that_o those_o wicked_a bishop_n may_v be_v confound_v of_o all_o and_o each_o in_o several_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n hart._n you_o bring_v i_o word_n of_o ferus_fw-la which_o be_v not_o he_o perhaps_o but_o thrust_v into_o his_o commentary_n before_o they_o come_v unto_o the_o print_n by_o some_o malicious_a heretic_n for_o 72._o sixtus_n senensis_n say_v that_o there_o be_v witness_n of_o very_o good_a credit_n who_o avouch_v that_o the_o commentary_n of_o ferus_fw-la upon_o matthew_n be_v corrupt_v by_o heretic_n after_o his_o death_n before_o they_o be_v print_v rainoldes_n sixtus_n say_v in_o deed_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o matthew_n that_o they_o be_v corrupt_v chief_o in_o 3._o that_o place_n where_o ferus_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o key_n that_o christ_n do_v promise_n peter_n for_o there_o be_v set_v down_o as_o a_o special_a note_n that_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n terrarum_fw-la i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o say_v not_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o earth_n these_o word_n pertain_v nothing_o to_o a_o earthly_a power_n which_o yet_o some_o endeavour_n by_o they_o to_o establish_v affirm_v that_o peter_n receive_v fullness_n of_o power_n not_o only_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o also_o temporal_a and_o after_o declaration_n how_o this_o be_v plain_o reprove_v by_o s._n 1._o bernard_n write_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n it_o be_v add_v far_a peter_n receive_v the_o key_n that_o be_v to_o say_v power_n not_o a_o earthly_a power_n that_o he_o may_v give_v and_o take_v away_o dominion_n and_o kingdom_n neither_o such_o a_o power_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v what_o he_o listen_v as_o many_o man_n dream_v but_o he_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v open_v &_o shut_v remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n neither_o this_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o as_o a_o minister_n and_o servant_n do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o savour_n so_o strong_o of_o a_o heretical_a spirit_n that_o sixtus_n say_v it_o be_v avouch_v by_o credible_a witness_n the_o commentary_n of_o ferus_fw-la on_o matthew_n be_v corrupt_v after_o his_o death_n by_o heretic_n senensis_n chief_o in_o this_o place_n before_o they_o be_v print_v wherein_o both_o the_o witness_n &_o sixtus_n in_o my_o judgement_n have_v show_v themselves_o wise_a for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o bear_v man_n in_o hand_n that_o heretic_n corrupt_v the_o commentary_n of_o ferus_fw-la chief_o in_o this_o place_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v that_o the_o strong_a hold_n of_o all_o your_o religion_n the_o pope_n supreme_a power_n to_o give_v and_o take_v away_o kingdom_n be_v shake_v by_o a_o man_n so_o learned_a so_o famous_a so_o catholic_a as_o ferus_fw-la but_o sixtus_n say_v not_o of_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o act_n that_o they_o be_v corrupt_v also_o by_o heretic_n yet_o some_o heretic_n hand_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o they_o chief_o in_o this_o place_n where_o he_o do_v reprove_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o name_v they_o wicked_a bishop_n wherefore_o it_o will_v do_v well_o that_o the_o oversight_n of_o sixtus_n herein_o be_v mend_v by_o some_o other_o sixtus_n who_o may_v say_v as_o much_o of_o ferus_fw-la on_o the_o act_n as_o sixtus_n say_v of_o he_o on_o matthew_n perhaps_o you_o have_v not_o witness_n that_o will_v avouch_v this_o as_o some_o avouch_v that_o the_o least_o matter_n of_o a_o thousand_o for_o two_o or_o three_o such_o as_o writer_n surius_n pontacus_n and_o genebrardus_n man_n that_o have_v sell_v themselves_o to_o make_v lie_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o popery_n will_v be_v ready_a on_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o post_n lindan_n or_o bolsecke_n not_o only_o to_o say_v it_o but_o to_o chronicle_v it_o too_o here_o be_v all_o the_o difficulty_n that_o gallorum_n these_o book_n be_v print_v thus_o among_o yourselves_o who_o set_v they_o forth_o first_o and_o we_o receive_v they_o at_o your_o hand_n a_o great_a fault_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o of_o printer_n or_o censour_n and_o allower_n of_o book_n to_o the_o print_n who_o suffer_v such_o scandalous_a place_n to_o be_v print_v yea_o nutium_fw-la to_o be_v print_v so_o still_o special_o when_o sixtus_n senensis_n have_v say_v and_o credible_a witness_n have_v avouch_v that_o heretic_n do_v corrupt_v they_o no_o no_o m._n hart_n it_o be_v too_o stale_a a_o jest_n to_o say_v that_o heretic_n have_v corrupt_v the_o commentary_n of_o ferus_fw-la for_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n oppress_v both_o the_o magistracy_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v grow_v to_o such_o outrage_n that_o if_o we_o who_o you_o call_v heretic_n shall_v hold_v our_o peace_n the_o stone_n will_v cry_v against_o it_o hart._n what_o needs_o all_o this_o of_o ferus_fw-la or_o sixtus_n or_o canoniste_n or_o i_o know_v not_o who_o you_o call_v i_o to_o the_o scripture_n when_o i_o bring_v the_o father_n and_o now_o from_o the_o scripture_n you_o bring_v i_o to_o writer_n of_o our_o own_o age_n rainoldes_n not_o from_o the_o scripture_n to_o they_o but_o to_o the_o scripture_n by_o they_o as_o christ_n when_o the_o phariseis_n sclaunder_v his_o work_n 12.27_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o their_o own_o child_n thereby_o to_o make_v they_o see_v the_o truth_n and_o as_o he_o say_v to_o they_o therefore_o your_o child_n shall_v be_v your_o judge_n so_o i_o say_v to_o you_o therefore_o your_o brethren_n shall_v be_v your_o judge_n hart._n i_o grant_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o in_o all_o respect_n submit_v himself_o as_o peter_n to_o give_v account_n of_o his_o do_n both_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o inferior_a christian_n but_o ferus_fw-la shall_v have_v consider_v and_o so_o must_v you_o that_o the_o time_n be_v not_o like_a it_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o he_o to_o do_v so_o now_o rainoldes_n so_o i_o think_v the_o case_n be_v alter_v you_o mean_v by_o the_o time_n the_o man_n who_o live_v
forty_o chapter_n which_o have_v not_o twenty_o in_o the_o latin_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o latin_a have_v the_o whole_a as_o well_o as_o the_o greek_a which_o be_v the_o more_o likely_a to_o have_v be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o greek_a cyrill_n allege_v by_o the_o council_n and_o our_o latin_a cyrill_n translate_v out_o of_o greek_a because_o that_o our_o latin_a have_v also_o other_o sentence_n in_o the_o ten_o book_n which_o be_v allege_v 10._o by_o the_o council_n out_o of_o the_o four_o and_o twentéeth_n and_o in_o their_o division_n quarto_fw-la a_o chapter_n and_o a_o book_n do_v go_v for_o all_o one_o whereas_o the_o book_n in_o latin_a be_v subdivided_n into_o chapter_n the_o mention_v therefore_o of_o more_o book_n of_o cyrils_n treasure_n than_o we_o have_v remove_v not_o suspicion_n of_o forgery_n from_o the_o say_n which_o thomas_n cit_v thence_o for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n chief_o since_o trapezuntius_fw-la who_o translate_v that_o work_n of_o cyrill_n into_o latin_a be_v a_o man_n affectionate_a great_o to_o the_o pope_n that_o if_o he_o have_v leave_v out_o somewhat_o of_o that_o greek_a as_o he_o have_v perhaps_o unless_o he_o use_v cyril_n better_a than_o trapezuntius_fw-la eusebius_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o credible_a that_o he_o will_v have_v leave_v out_o so_o many_o place_n so_o notable_a proof_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o weighty_a so_o near_o touch_v he_o who_o he_o so_o dear_o love_v in_o deed_n they_o be_v too_o notable_a and_o perfect_a for_o the_o purpose_n and_o such_o as_o your_o caeteri_fw-la canus_n say_v have_v not_o their_o match_n throughout_o all_o the_o father_n wherein_o that_o be_v also_o worthy_a of_o remembrance_n which_o a_o wise_a man_n say_v in_o a_o like_a case_n to_o much_o perfection_n breed_v suspicion_n neither_o be_v s._n cyril_n likely_a to_o write_v they_o 102._o who_o when_z the_o council_n of_o carthage_n send_v unto_o he_o about_o the_o pope_n usurp_v be_v so_o glad_a to_o send_v they_o evidence_n against_o it_o neither_o be_v his_o treasure_n fit_v to_o write_v they_o in_o as_o handle_v all_o a_o other_o matter_n namely_o that_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o god_n the_o father_n but_o the_o forge_n of_o cyrill_n may_v be_v better_o bear_v with_o he_o be_v but_o one_o man_n that_o be_v no_o way_n tolerable_a that_o the_o like_a deal_n be_v use_v with_o six_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o more_o even_o with_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n of_o who_o graecorum_n thomas_n write_v that_o they_o decree_v ●hus_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v accuse_v let_v he_o appeal_v free_o to_o romae_fw-la the_o pope_n of_o rome_n refugii_fw-la because_o we_o have_v peter_n for_o a_o rock_n of_o refuge_n and_o he_o alone_o have_v right_a with_o freedom_n of_o power_n in_o the_o steed_n of_o god_n to_o judge_v and_o try_v the_o crime_n of_o a_o bishop_n accuse_v according_a to_o the_o key_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v give_v he_o and_o again_o after_o let_v all_o thing_n be_v keep_v which_o be_v define_v by_o he_o as_o define_v by_o the_o vicar_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o to_o prove_v habet_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n have_v universal_a soveraintie_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v read_v say_v thomas_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n that_o the_o whole_a council_n do_v cry_v to_o pope_n leo_n god_n grant_v long_a life_n to_o leo_n the_o most_o holy_a apostolic_a &_o 〈◊〉_d universal_a patriarch_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n now_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n no_o more_o than_o the_o other_o be_v in_o cyrils_n treasure_n wherefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o either_o thomas_n coin_v they_o or_o have_v they_o from_o some_o coiner_n belike_o he_o who_o do_v it_o be_v master_n of_o the_o pope_n mint_n and_o who_o that_o shall_v be_v but_o thomas_n i_o know_v not_o hart._n neither_o thomas_n nor_o any_o else_o for_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o heretic_n have_v raze_v they_o out_o of_o our_o copy_n as_o comitem_fw-la gregory_n complain_v to_o the_o earl_n narses_n rainoldes_n or_o rather_o as_o queritur_fw-la canus_n report_v out_o of_o gregory_n but_o report_v false_o for_o gregory_n do_v not_o mention_v either_o heretic_n or_o these_o thing_n only_o est_fw-la he_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n have_v falsify_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o one_o place_n which_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v of_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n as_o the_o grecian_n reckon_v it_o wherein_o constantinople_n be_v allow_v equal_a privilege_n with_o rome_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v still_o withstand_v this_o canon_n chief_o pope_n 60._o leo._n yet_o constantinople_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v set_v it_o down_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o difference_n between_o they_o appear_v to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o 28._o greek_a and_o canon_n latin_a copy_n the_o one_o of_o they_o have_v it_o and_o the_o other_o want_v it_o which_o be_v a_o great_a presumption_n that_o gregory_n in_o say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n be_v falsify_v by_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n in_o one_o place_n mean_v this_o place_n by_o which_o constantinople_n claim_v as_o great_a prerogative_n as_o rome_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n cry_v against_o it_o and_o hereof_o 16._o carranza_n in_o the_o abridgement_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o 15._o surius_n in_o the_o whole_a do_v give_v a_o mark_n both_o reject_v that_o canon_n but_o neither_o surius_n nor_o carranza_n do_v bring_v in_o any_o such_o stuff_n as_o that_o of_o thomas_n or_o say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o heretic_n have_v raze_v it_o out_o nay_o the_o very_a canon_n themselves_o of_o that_o council_n which_o be_v agree_v upon_o in_o both_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a copy_n do_v cut_v off_o all_o show_n from_o such_o false_a and_o frivolous_a defence_n of_o thomas_n for_o it_o can_v be_v think_v that_o so_o great_a a_o council_n of_o so_o wise_a man_n ordain_v thing_n repugnant_a one_o unto_o a_o other_o and_o 19_o they_o have_v ordain_v repugnant_a unto_o that_o which_o thomas_n cit_v of_o the_o pope_n as_o shall_v appear_v 4._o after_o but_o canus_n have_v great_o both_o abuse_v you_o and_o overshoot_v himself_o who_o to_o prove_v that_o now_o the_o copy_n have_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v in_o thomas_n time_n bring_v gregory_n for_o witness_n who_o live_v year_n long_o before_o thomas_n and_o charge_v heretic_n with_o that_o wherewith_o gregory_n charge_v constantinop_n catholic_n and_o say_v that_o they_o have_v raze_v out_o where_o gregory_n say_v they_o have_v chalced_fw-la falsify_v which_o they_o may_v do_v by_o add_v too_o and_o speak_v it_o of_o sundry_a place_n which_o gregory_n speak_v but_o of_o loco_fw-la one_o and_o that_o one_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o own_o friend_n a_o other_o one_o then_o those_o of_o thomas_n now_o much_o more_o ingenuous_o shall_v canus_n have_v do_v and_o you_o who_o follow_v he_o in_o evil_a to_o confess_v a_o fault_n where_o a_o fault_n be_v then_o to_o commit_v many_o for_o the_o cover_n of_o one_o and_o for_o cléer_a thomas_n to_o corrupt_v gregory_n and_o to_o slander_v we_o with_o unjust_a reproach_n that_o you_o may_v save_v yourselves_o from_o a_o just_a reproof_n hart._n i_o do_v not_o peruse_v the_o place_n myself_o in_o gregory_n but_o take_v it_o as_o i_o find_v it_o allege_v by_o learned_a man_n for_o 13._o cope_n have_v it_o as_o well_o as_o canus_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o they_o do_v wrest_v it_o purposely_o but_o trust_v their_o memory_n for_o the_o matter_n in_o general_a do_v miss_v in_o set_v down_o the_o word_n rainoldes_n neither_o do_v i_o charge_v they_o as_o wilful_a wrester_n of_o it_o it_o may_v be_v that_o canus_n read_v it_o in_o some_o other_o 15.14_o and_o cope_n in_o canus_n and_o you_o in_o cope_n and_o thus_o by_o tradition_n you_o be_v deceive_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n remember_v christ_n sentence_n if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n but_o this_o may_v suffice_v for_o a_o taste_n of_o your_o corrupt_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o print_n now_o how_o you_o have_v use_v they_o since_o they_o be_v print_v let_v your_o set_n forth_o of_o cyprian_a first_o at_o rome_n and_o then_o at_o anwerp_n be_v a_o example_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o novatians_n or_o as_o they_o call_v themselves_o 3●_n puritan_fw-gr a_o faction_n of_o man_n who_o think_v all_o impure_a and_o unclean_a which_o have_v fall_v in_o the_o time_n of_o
copy_n very_o ancient_a man_n very_o learned_a exquisite_a diligence_n use_v in_o it_o this_o be_v it_o which_o make_v i_o the_o more_o suspect_v it_o the_o diligence_n be_v too_o exquisite_a 2._o when_o a_o petycaptaine_n who_o scipio_n do_v punish_v for_o that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o field_n say_v that_o he_o remain_v in_o the_o camp_n to_o keep_v it_o i_o love_v not_o they_o quoth_v scipio_n that_o be_v too_o diligent_a the_o camp_n be_v too_o well_o keep_v by_o the_o petycaptaine_n the_o cardinal_n care_n of_o cyprian_a may_v have_v the_o like_a fault_n manutius_n gorse●um_fw-la himself_o write_v that_o his_o whole_a charge_n of_o print_v book_n at_o rome_n pertain_v dignitatem_fw-la to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o pope_n see_n i_o fear_v i_o this_o dignity_n do_v dasel_n much_o their_o eye_n who_o peruse_v copy_n to_o correct_v the_o father_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v as_o concilio_fw-la he_o declare_v to_o have_v they_o so_o correct_v that_o there_o shall_v remain_v no_o spot_n which_o may_v infect_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a specie_fw-la with_o the_o show_n of_o false_a doctrine_n whereby_o if_o it_o be_v weigh_v what_o false_a doctrine_n signify_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n a_o man_n may_v guess_v easy_o how_o they_o do_v correct_v they_o chief_o since_o they_o have_v not_o show_v where_o they_o find_v those_o word_n of_o one_o chair_n and_o primacy_n give_v unto_o peter_n as_o common_o other_o use_v to_o do_v in_o new_a correction_n of_o autour_n which_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o condemn_v as_o a_o token_n of_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o find_v they_o in_o one_o or_o other_o bad_a copy_n for_o such_o they_o follow_v some_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o pamelius_n who_o in_o sundry_a place_n correct_v the_o roman_a print_n and_o that_o just_o but_o pamelius_n find_v they_o in_o a_o write_v copy_n of_o the_o cambron-abbey_n the_o best_a he_o say_v of_o all_o his_o copy_n wherein_o he_o find_v also_o the_o word_n which_o gratian_n have_v of_o cleave_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o so_o s._n he_o be_v bold_a to_o put_v they_o into_o cyprian_n text_n more_o bold_a than_o wise_a in_o that_o for_o to_o see_v how_o fancy_n do_v overrule_v discretion_n first_o if_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o cambron-abbey_n have_v be_v very_o good_a yet_o to_o follow_v one_o against_o so_o many_o which_o himself_o which_o morelius_n which_o other_n who_o print_a cyprian_n have_v yourselves_o will_v think_v it_o rashness_n but_o that_o it_o make_v for_o the_o pope_n advantage_n then_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o man_n of_o cambron_n who_o write_v that_o abbey-copie_n be_v tamper_n about_o it_o to_o square_v it_o unto_o somewhat_o for_o ●c●les_n he_o have_v leave_v out_o that_o clause_n of_o cyprian_a touch_v the_o apostle_n potes●●ti●_n endue_v with_o like_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o of_o power_n and_o in_o stead_n ofthese_fw-mi word_n datu●_fw-la but_o the_o beginning_n do_v come_v from_o unity_n he_o have_v put_v in_o th●se_a but_o the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n three_o ifhe_v alter_v not_o the_o word_n of_o purpose_n yet_o may_v he_o write_v that_o in_o the_o text_n by_o error_n which_o some_o have_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n or_o if_o he_o do_v not_o so_o himself_o perhaps_o a_o other_o have_v who_o he_o follow_v a_o thing_n that_o fall_v often_o out_o in_o write_v copy_n as_o contextum_fw-la erasmus_n witness_v he_o find_v s._n augustine_n work_n deprave_v much_o by_o that_o folly_n and_o if_o you_o suspect_v the_o judgement_n of_o erasmus_n nivellium_fw-la the_o paris-overseers_a consent_n with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n though_o otherwise_o dissent_v from_o he_o hart._n you_o may_v reject_v what_o evidence_n soever_o you_o li●t_v if_o you_o please_v yourself_o in_o such_o conjecture_n and_o guess_n for_o if_o any_o father_n sentence_n be_v allege_v and_o you_o like_v it_o not_o you_o may_v say_v that_o perhaps_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n and_o some_o unskilful_a scrivener_n write_v it_o in_o the_o text_n as_o they_o have_v do_v elsewhere_o in_o austin_n rainoldes_n not_o in_o austin_n only_o but_o in_o cyprian_a too_o as_o your_o eccles_n pamelius_n have_v observe_v &_o that_o even_o in_o this_o treatise_n touch_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n but_o whether_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n whereof_o we_o speak_v in_o cyprian_n may_v come_v into_o the_o text_n out_o of_o the_o margent-note_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o reasonable_a man_n upon_o the_o view_n of_o the_o circumstance_n the_o write_v copy_n cite_v by_o eccles_n pamelius_n himself_o which_o cardinal_n hosius_n occupy_v convince_v it_o most_o plain_o for_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o for_o there_o after_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n unto_o peter_n allege_v out_o of_o matthew_n these_o word_n be_v interlace_v hic_fw-la petro_n primatus_fw-la datur_fw-la here_o the_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n which_o to_o have_v be_v note_v by_o some_o in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o neither_o the_o romane-print_n nor_o the_o anwerp_n can_v bring_v they_o into_o cyprian_n text_n but_o either_o by_o change_v or_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n here_o datur_fw-la the_o one_o have_v change_v it_o into_o the_o word_n and_o datur_fw-la the_o other_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o one_o chair_n creep_v in_o by_o like_a stealth_n it_o be_v very_o probable_a though_o hard_a to_o convince_v but_o the_o last_o of_o stick_v unto_o peter_n chair_n add_v by_o pamelius_n do_v seem_v to_o have_v leap_v into_o the_o text_n sudden_o before_o the_o margin_n see_v they_o for_o they_o be_v write_v not_o only_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o cambron-abbey_n but_o in_o gratian_n too_o and_o thereupon_o pamelius_n say_v that_o he_o be_v bold_a to_o put_v they_o into_o cyprian_n text_n now_o shall_v the_o father_n be_v well_o amend_v short_o if_o you_o amend_v they_o out_o of_o gratian_n a_o man_n who_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n state_n have_v forge_v and_o falsify_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n most_o lewd_o and_o shameful_o know_v you_o not_o his_o famous_a abuse_n of_o s._n austin_n 8._o who_o he_o have_v make_v to_o say_v that_o connume●antur_fw-la the_o decretal_a epistle_n as_o you_o term_v they_o of_o the_o pope_n be_v count_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n howbeit_o if_o he_o have_v not_o abuse_v cyprian_a so_o yet_o he_o rather_o hurt_v than_o help_v the_o correction_n of_o your_o new_a print_n for_o where_o loquor_fw-la he_o allege_v that_o whole_a place_n of_o cyprian_a which_o they_o have_v make_v such_o change_n in_o he_o neither_o have_v the_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n nor_o christ_n appoint_a one_o chair_n nor_o that_o the_o chair_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o wherefore_o if_o his_o authority_n may_v warrant_v the_o soundness_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v cite_v by_o he_o out_o of_o the_o father_n he_o bring_v you_o great_a discredit_n than_o credit_n for_o that_o which_o you_o have_v change_v in_o cyprian_a hart._n the_o clause_n which_o pamelius_n add_v to_o cyprian_a he_o add_v on_o the_o warrant_v not_o of_o gratian'ss_n credit_n but_o of_o the_o cambron-copie_n wherewith_o as_o far_o as_o gratian_n agree_v he_o approve_v he_o he_o approve_v he_o not_o in_o that_o he_o disagree_v from_o it_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o discredit_n to_o pamelius_n to_o have_v rather_o follow_v that_o copy_n than_o gratian_n since_o gratian_n have_v miss_v sometime_o as_o we_o grant_v in_o cite_v of_o the_o father_n perhaps_o by_o set_v down_o not_o so_o much_o their_o word_n as_o that_o which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v mean_v thereby_o but_o these_o be_v small_a matter_n whereto_o you_o pick_v quarrel_n in_o the_o print_n of_o cyprian_a at_o rome_n or_o at_o antwerp_n for_o this_o or_o that_o correction_n that_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v some_o pretence_n yet_o why_o you_o refuse_v trial_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n rainoldes_n when_o a_o young_a man_n who_o ●_o plato_n reproove_v for_o pla_v at_o die_n say_v do_v you_o reprove_v i_o for_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n the_o matter_n be_v small_a quoth_v plato_n but_o the_o custom_n of_o it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n so_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v small_a which_o i_o reprove_v in_o your_o correct_v of_o cyprian_a but_o the_o custom_n of_o such_o correct_a be_v no_o small_a matter_n for_o gratian_n you_o grant_v set_v down_o sometime_o not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n but_o that_o which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v mean_v thereby_o what_o if_o he_o misse-conceive_a it_o and_o howsoever_o that_o be_v what_o if_o here_o he_o aim_v at_o the_o meaning_n of_o cyprian_a as_o it_o may_v seem_v he_o do_v for_o confidit_fw-la
the_o godly_a and_o give_v to_o sinner_n pardon_v now_o since_o our_o reform_a church_n have_v think_v it_o impious_a to_o offer_v any_o such_o prayer_n to_o creature_n why_o have_v you_o retain_v this_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o the_o other_o to_o s._n thomas_n hart._n whether_o that_o prayer_n to_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a portesse_n before_o they_o reform_v it_o i_o be_o not_o sure_a perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o although_o it_o be_v in_o we_o after_o the_o use_n of_o sarum_n rainoldes_n most_o likely_a that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a too_o since_o he_o die_v a_o martyr_n of_o the_o roman_a papacy_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v or_o no_o there_o be_v other_o thing_n cer●a_n uncertain_a and_o aliena_n inconvenient_a which_o the_o reformer_n have_v leave_v out_o as_o reformat_fw-la the_o pope_n confess_v who_o reformat_fw-la confess_v also_o that_o almost_o all_o primer_n yea_o the_o latin_a too_o referta_fw-la be_v stuff_v full_a with_o vain_a error_n of_o superstition_n before_o he_o reform_v it_o wherefore_o since_o you_o have_v leave_v out_o other_o superstitious_a &_o inconvenient_a thing_n in_o your_o reform_a seruicebooke_n why_o have_v you_o retain_v this_o prayer_n to_o the_o cross_n which_o may_v have_v go_v with_o the_o rest_n hart._n the_o other_o be_v abolish_v just_o as_o unfit_a but_o this_o be_v ●ot_n so_o for_o why_o shall_v you_o mislike_v a_o prayer_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o which_o s._n ●4_n paul_n say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v rejoice_v but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n rainoldes_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n crucify_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v mean_v it_o not_o in_o the_o de●s_fw-la wood_n the_o paribulo_fw-la galowe_n the_o tangere_fw-la tree_n sequuntur_fw-la to_o which_o you_o make_v your_o prayer_n for_o god_n forbid_v that_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o any_o thing_n save_v 1.31_o in_o the_o lord_n who_o redeem_n of_o we_o by_o suffer_v death_n upon_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n to_o the_o jew_n s._n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o cross_n be_v a_o stumble_a block_n by_o a_o 〈◊〉_d figurative_a speech_n mean_v as_o himself_o do_v open_v it_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n crucify_v and_o so_o he_o call_v christ_n blood_n 1.20_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n 1.18_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n rise_v of_o it_o 6.12_o persecution_n for_o the_o cross_n and_o against_o they_o who_o rejoice_v in_o circumcision_n and_o the_o law_n he_o say_v that_o he_o rejoice_v not_o but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n but_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o my_o question_n if_o they_o of_o your_o church_n who_o reform_v your_o seruicebooke_n thought_n that_o of_o the_o prayer_n which_o we_o do_v mislike_v they_o may_v abolish_v some_o and_o retain_v other_o what_o if_o among_o the_o feast_n which_o other_o do_v mislike_v they_o who_o reform_v our_o ceremony_n retain_v the_o annunciation_n and_o purification_n of_o the_o virgin_n though_o they_o abolish_v the_o conception_n nativity_n and_o assumption_n chief_o see_v that_o in_o those_o which_o they_o retain_v they_o regard_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n conceive_v and_o present_v as_o yourselves_o acknowledge_v in_o those_o which_o they_o abolish_v they_o remove_v the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o a_o creature_n as_o the_o thing_n witness_v for_o both_o they_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v feast_n institute_v to_o a_o saint_n honour_n as_o they_o be_v indeed_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n of_o they_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o man_n may_v be_v edify_v by_o that_o whereof_o the_o memory_n be_v celebrate_v in_o they_o and_o they_o maintain_v corrupt_a opinion_n touch_v the_o virgin_n with_o derogation_n to_o christ_n honour_n for_o sanctorun_n you_o mean_v by_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o nativity_n and_o conception_n that_o she_o be_v neither_o bear_v nor_o conceive_v in_o sin_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o neither_o she_o need_v christ_n to_o be_v 1.47_o her_o saviour_n who_o come_v to_o save_v sinner_n &_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n 2d_o to_o be_v sever_v from_o sinner_n be_v common_a unto_o she_o with_o he_o 1.15_o a_o thing_n so_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v that_o 5.12_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o 2.3_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n that_o not_o 174._o the_o father_n only_a but_o your_o chief_a 2._o schoolman_n and_o firmi●sun●_n canon_n also_o do_v gainsay_v it_o yea_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n when_o it_o be_v creep_v in_o be_v therefore_o 7._o reprove_v and_o the_o very_a gloze_n of_o your_o pronuntiandum_fw-la canon-law_n condemn_v sundry_a country_n and_o england_n namely_o for_o keep_v it_o but_o the_o conception_n and_o nativity_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n make_v she_o scarce_o equal_a unto_o christ_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o assumption_n do_v lift_v she_o somewhat_o high_a for_o when_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n 1.12_o the_o apostle_n be_v lead_v forth_o a_o litleway_n on_o foot_n to_o see_v it_o and_o witness_v it_o but_o to_o her_o assumption_n they_o be_v bring_v by_o miracle_n in_o cloud_n as_o in_o chariot_n from_o all_o the_o coast_n of_o the_o world_n through_o which_o they_o be_v disperse_v and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o call_v and_o call_v again_o a_o fable_n or_o if_o you_o will_v a_o lie_n as_o 8._o bede_n do_v though_o your_o divine_n of_o rheims_n do_v vouch_v it_o as_o a_o true_a story_n hart._n it_o be_v a_o true_a story_n as_o our_o divine_n of_o rheims_n do_v ●ouch_v it_o though_o as_o he_o report_v it_o who_o venerable_a bede_n do_v touch_v it_o be_v a_o lie_n for_o mariae_fw-la he_o report_v it_o to_o have_v be_v do_v the_o second_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n which_o bede_n do_v prove_v it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o our_o divine_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o fifteen_o year_n after_o for_o they_o take_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o she_o live_v three_o score_n and_o three_o year_n in_o all_o now_o ●_o she_o bring_v forth_o christ_n when_o she_o be_v fifteen_o year_n old_a so_o that_o her_o assumption_n be_v eight_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n nativity_n and_o this_o agree_v with_o chronico_fw-la eusebius_n who_o say_v that_o some_o do_v write_v it_o be_v revel_v to_o they_o that_o she_o be_v assumpt_v the_o eight_o and_o forteeth_n year_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v fifteen_o year_n after_o his_o ascension_n rainoldes_n then_o you_o grant_v that_o they_o who_o say_v it_o be_v the_o second_o year_n after_o do_v lie_v hart._n i_o grant_v for_o that_o circumstance_n can_v not_o stand_v with_o scripture_n as_o venerable_a bede_n do_v prove_v rainoldes_n then_o a_o 3._o holy_a nun_n do_v lie_v or_o a_o angel_n 80._o or_o a_o devil_n that_o appéer_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o tell_v she_o that_o tale_n hart._n what_o if_o some_o be_v deceive_v in_o circumstance_n of_o time_n yet_o the_o story_n notwithstanding_o of_o her_o assumption_n be_v true_a as_o our_o divine_n of_o rheims_n report_v it_o for_o 1.14_o at_o the_o time_n of_o her_o death_n as_o s._n timotheum_n denys_n first_o and_o after_o he_o s._n deiparae_fw-la damascene_fw-la write_v all_o the_o apostle_n then_o disperse_v into_o diverse_a nation_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v miraculous_o bring_v together_o save_v s._n thomas_n who_o come_v the_o three_o day_n after_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o honour_v her_o divine_a departure_n and_o funeral_n as_o the_o say_a s._n denys_n write_v who_o say_v that_o himself_o s._n timothee_n and_o s._n hierotheus_n be_v present_a testify_v also_o of_o his_o own_o hear_n that_o both_o before_o her_o death_n and_o after_o for_o three_o day_n not_o only_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n present_a but_o the_o angel_n also_o and_o power_n of_o heaven_n do_v sing_v most_o melodious_a hymn_n they_o bury_v her_o sacred_a body_n in_o gethsemani_n but_o for_o s._n thomas_n sake_n who_o desire_v to_o see_v and_o to_o reverence_v it_o they_o open_v the_o sepucher_n the_o three_o day_n and_o find_v it_o void_a of_o the_o holy_a body_n but_o exceed_o fragrant_a they_o return_v assure_o deem_v that_o her_o body_n be_v assumpt_v into_o heaven_n as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n hold_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o celebrate_v most_o solemn_o the_o day_n of_o her_o assumption_n and_o it_o be_v consonant_n not_o only_o to_o the_o say_a s._n denys_n &_o s._n damascene_fw-la but_o to_o s._n deipara_n athanasius_n also_o who_o avouch_v the_o same_o of_o which_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n s._n bernard_n also_o write_v five_o notable_a sermon_n extant_a in_o his_o work_n rainoldes_n but_o in_o all_o those_o five_o sermon_n of_o s._n bernard_n there_o
your_o priest_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n who_o offer_v up_o this_o sacrifice_n hart._n no_o sir_n nor_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o they_o be_v christian_a priest_n rainoldes_n but_o they_o who_o must_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi._n for_o afterward_o 3.3_o entreat_v of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o oblation_n or_o offer_v as_o we_o call_v it_o that_o shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n shall_v fine_v the_o son_n of_o levi_n and_o purify_v they_o as_o gold_n and_o silver_n that_o they_o may_v offer_v a_o offering_n unto_o god_n in_o righteousness_n wherefore_o if_o the_o offering_n that_o malachi_n do_v speak_v of_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o then_o the_o proper_a priest_n by_o who_o it_o be_v offer_v be_v the_o jewish_a priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n even_o the_o son_n of_o levi._n but_o if_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n betoken_v by_o a_o figure_n the_o spiritual_a levit_n that_o be_v all_o the_o faithful_a who_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v make_v 2.9_o a_o royal_a priesthood_n 1.6_o even_o king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n his_o father_n as_o your_o 3._o montanus_n well_o expound_v it_o then_o must_v the_o offering_n by_o a_o figure_n signify_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n which_o christian_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v bind_v to_o offer_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o truth_n as_o 11.14_o christ_n say_v of_o john_n baptist_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o be_v elias_n which_o be_v to_o come_v meaning_n that_o 4.5_o the_o prophet_n do_v signify_v john_n baptist_n by_o the_o name_n of_o elias_n so_o i_o may_v say_v to_o you_o touch_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o be_v the_o clean_a offering_n which_o shall_v in_o every_o place_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o prophet_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o religious_a worship_n of_o god_n 4.23_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o gentile_n convert_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v serve_v he_o in_o through_o all_o the_o world_n be_v wont_a to_o describe_v it_o by_o figurative_a speech_n draw_v from_o the_o external_a and_o carnal_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n so_o they_o say_v that_o 19.19_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n that_o 56.7_o god_n will_v accept_v the_o burn_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o stranger_n upon_o his_o altar_n that_o ●_o all_o the_o sheeepe_a of_o kedar_n shall_v be_v offefer_v on_o it_o and_o the_o ram_n of_o nebaioth_n that_o 16_o the_o gentile_n shall_v go_v up_o to_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n from_o year_n to_o year_n 17._o unto_o jerusalem_n and_o 21._o every_o pot_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o juda_n shall_v be_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o all_o they_o who_o sacrifice_n shall_v come_v &_o take_v of_o they_o and_o see_v therein_o final_o that_o 3.4_o the_o offering_n of_o juda_n and_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v sweet_a unto_o the_o lord_n as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o old_a and_o in_o the_o year_n afore_o wherefore_o as_o the_o prophet_n do_v mention_v a_o offering_n which_o the_o christian_a church_n shall_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o do_v they_o mention_v burn_v offering_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o sheep_n of_o kedar_n the_o ram_n of_o nebaioth_n to_o be_v offer_v on_o a_o altar_n they_o mention_v jerusalem_n to_o be_v go_v unto_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n to_o be_v keep_v the_o flesh_n of_o beast_n sacrifice_v to_o be_v sod_a in_o pot_n the_o levite_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n who_o shall_v make_v the_o offering_n in_o righteousness_n to_o god_n but_o neither_o do_v 1●_n the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o levite_n continue_v neither_o be_v 4.21_o jerusalem_n the_o place_n to_o worship_n god_n neither_o be_v 4.10_o the_o jewish_a feast_n the_o time_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o will_v he_o be_v serve_v ●_o with_o sacrifice_n and_o offer_v if_o they_o be_v take_v proper_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o mean_v by_o a_o allegory_n as_o we_o term_v it_o to_o show_v that_o all_o christian_n shall_v as_o priest_n and_o levite_n offer_v up_o themselves_o and_o they_o as_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o time_n as_o solemn_a feast_n in_o all_o place_n as_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o the_o clean_a offering_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n say_v it_o shall_v be_v offer_v in_o every_o place_n unto_o the_o lord_n do_v signify_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v make_v upon_o a_o altar_n as_o your_o 1._o council_n will_v have_v it_o but_o the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n which_o s._n 2.8_o paul_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o offer_v when_o he_o will_v man_n to_o pray_v in_o every_o place_n lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n without_o wrath_n &_o dout_a hart._n the_o prophet_n speak_v much_o in_o deed_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v not_o proper_o and_o simple_o but_o figurative_o by_o obscure_a speech_n and_o allegory_n and_o parable_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o then_o they_o be_v write_v as_o 3._o tertullian_n note_v but_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n be_v use_v proper_o for_o a_o material_a altar_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v 13.10_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n for_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n by_o these_o word_n that_o in_o follow_v too_o much_o their_o old_a jewish_a rite_n they_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o a_o other_o manner_n &_o a_o more_o excellent_a sacrifice_n and_o meat_n meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a altar_n and_o christ_n own_o blessed_a body_n offer_v and_o eat_v there_o of_o which_o they_o that_o continue_v in_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a law_n can_v not_o be_v partaker_n this_o altar_n say_v 21._o isychius_n be_v the_o altar_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o incredulity_n must_v not_o behold_v and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n to_o sacrifice_v on_o and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o spiritual_a altar_n wherefore_o see_v that_o we_o have_v a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n and_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n do_v import_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v on_o it_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o very_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n and_o that_o out_o of_o doubt_n be_v the_o clean_a offering_n which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o according_a as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v define_v rainoldes_n and_o be_v you_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o by_o the_o word_n we_o have_v a_o altar_n the_o apostle_n mean_v a_o material_a altar_n such_o as_o your_o altar_n 7._o make_v of_o stone_n hart._n what_o else_o a_o very_a altar_n rainoldes_n and_o they_o who_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v of_o this_o altar_n be_v the_o stubborn_a jew_n who_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n hart._n the_o jew_n and_o such_o profane_a man_n rainoldes_n then_o your_o masseprieste_n may_v and_o do_v use_v to_o ●ate_z of_o this_o altar_n hart._n they_o do_v and_o what_o then_o rainoldes_n their_o tooth_n be_v good_a and_o strong_a if_o they_o eat_v of_o a_o altar_n that_o be_v make_v of_o stone_n be_v you_o sure_a that_o they_o eat_v of_o it_o hart._n eat_v of_o a_o altar_n as_o though_o you_o know_v not_o that_o by_o the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v signify_v they_o eat_v of_o christ_n body_n which_o thereby_o be_v mean_v rainoldes_n be_v it_o so_o then_o the_o word_n altar_n be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n but_o figurative_o for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o offer_v neither_o be_v it_o take_v for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o which_o sort_n he_o be_v 2._o mystical_o offer_v as_o often_o as_o the_o faithful_a do_v eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o cup_n wherein_o the_o break_n of_o his_o body_n and_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v represent_v to_o they_o but_o in_o that_o respect_n that_o christ_n be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o which_o sort_n he_o be_v true_o offer_v not_o often_o but_o 9.28_o once_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o ●0_n to_o sanctify_v they_o 14._o for_o ever_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o hart._n nay_o the_o ancient_a father_n isychius_n expound_v it_o
and_o of_o one_o soul_n they_o all_o be_v 4.4_o one_o body_n sanctify_v by_o one_o spirit_n through_o the_o sacrament_n of_o one_o baptism_n knit_v to_o christ_n by_o one_o faith_n to_o themselves_o in_o one_o love_n to_o serve_v together_o one_o lord_n in_o one_o hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o one_o eternal_a bliss_n and_o glory_n so_o that_o of_o this_o unity_n whereof_o peter_n state_n and_o nature_n be_v capable_a apply_v which_o you_o listen_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n either_o unity_n of_o will_n as_o you_o seem_v to_o do_v or_o unity_n of_o grace_n as_o 33._o other_o answer_v for_o it_o or_o unity_n of_o glory_n which_o 24._o christ_n do_v pray_v for_o also_o and_o some_o will_n like_o that_o better_a none_o of_o these_o do_v reach_v unto_o that_o majesty_n which_o leos_n word_n aspire_v to_o by_o give_v he_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n yet_o god_n forbid_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v suspect_v of_o he_o that_o he_o mean_v unity_n either_o of_o nature_n with_o god_n or_o of_o person_n with_o christ._n he_o have_v deserve_v better_a flavianum_fw-la then_o to_o be_v think_v so_o evil_o off_o but_o that_o which_o in_o truth_n may_v be_v say_v for_o he_o be_v that_o his_o meaning_n be_v as_o paul_n otherwhere_a himself_o do_v open_v it_o that_o christ_n do_v impart_v his_o name_n of_o rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o peter_n now_o some_o mist_n of_o fancy_n daisle_v his_o eye_n or_o else_o he_o will_v never_o have_v say_v thereupon_o that_o christ_n receive_v peter_n into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n and_o that_o in_o such_o preeminence_n as_o he_o receive_v none_o but_o he_o chief_o since_o he_o impart_v his_o great_a name_n and_o title_n of_o 3.1_o jesus_n of_o 105.15_o christ_n of_o 5.14_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n one_o of_o they_o to_o some_o the_o rest_n to_o all_o his_o servant_n neither_o do_v he_o give_v his_o name_n of_o rock_n to_o peter_n or_o of_o foundation_n to_o peter_n only_o as_o shall_v appear_v 1._o after_o but_o if_o yet_o you_o see_v not_o that_o leo_n do_v outreach_v in_o make_v peter_n as_o it_o be_v a_o felow-head_n a_o partie-rocke_n and_o the_o halfe-foundation_n of_o the_o church_n with_o christ_n behold_v a_o far_a fellowship_n wherein_o he_o join_v peter_n as_o mate_n and_o partner_n with_o god_n a_o fellowship_n of_o power_n suae_fw-la god_n have_v give_v to_o peter_n a_o great_a and_o a_o wonderful_a fellowship_n of_o his_o power_n and_o if_o he_o will_v have_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v common_a unto_o other_o prince_n with_o he_o he_o never_o give_v but_o by_o he_o whatsoever_o he_o give_v to_o other_o out_o of_o all_o controversy_n these_o word_n do_v lift_v up_o peter_n unto_o the_o fellowship_n of_o that_o glory_n of_o which_o god_n be_v so_o jealous_a that_o he_o have_v protest_v 42.8_o he_o will_v not_o give_v it_o to_o any_o other_o he_o have_v give_v it_o to_o christ_n who_o be_v one_o with_o himself_o god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n if_o any_o man_n presume_v to_o join_v a_o mortal_a creature_n whosoever_o as_o companion_n unto_o christ_n in_o it_o he_o rob_v christ_n of_o his_o honour_n of_o the_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o what_o do_v he_o else_o who_o say_v allege_v as_o leo_n do_v that_o s._n peter_n care_n shine_v over_o bishop_n in_o that_o their_o slanderer_n be_v deface_v that_o peter_n merit_n and_o authority_n do_v strengthen_v the_o writing_n of_o his_o servant_n against_o heretic_n that_o peter_n do_v not_o suffer_v their_o person_n to_o be_v stain_v who_o labour_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n decree_n be_v make_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o s._n peter_n that_o it_o must_v be_v impute_v unto_o s._n peter_n work_n and_o merit_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v get_v of_o god_n by_o daily_a prayer_n that_o nothing_o pass_v over_o unto_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o church_n no_o not_o unto_o any_o man_n from_o god_n but_o by_o s._n peter_n let_v every_o christian_a hart_n who_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n have_v give_v any_o warmth_n unto_o and_o his_o spirit_n wisdom_n be_v judge_n between_o you_o and_o we_o whether_o that_o to_o yield_v such_o power_n such_o authority_n such_o soverainetie_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o any_o saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v not_o a_o impair_n of_o the_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o king_n of_o saint_n the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n it_o gréeve_v i_o to_o speak_v so_o much_o against_o leo_n who_o learning_n i_o do_v love_n and_o reverence_v his_o ancient_a year_n but_o 7.9_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o he_o &_o must_v be_v have_v in_o great_a reverence_n who_o teach_v young_a elihu_n 32.6_o to_o reprove_v his_o ancient_n 33.12_o even_o holy_a job_n among_o they_o and_o to_o say_v of_o they_o 32.21_o i_o will_v not_o accept_v the_o person_n of_o any_o neither_o will_v i_o give_v title_n unto_o man_n for_o i_o may_v not_o give_v title_n if_o i_o shall_v do_v it_o a_o little_a he_o that_o make_v i_o will_v take_v i_o away_o uuherefore_o i_o do_v free_o without_o courtesy_n of_o title_n and_o accept_n of_o person_n profess_v that_o i_o mislike_v those_o haughty_a speech_n in_o leo_n and_o i_o think_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n so_o wrought_v through_o his_o ambitious_a advance_v peter_n that_o of_o the_o egg_n which_o he_o cherish_v two_o of_o the_o most_o venomous_a cokcatrice_n be_v breed_v that_o ever_o poison_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o one_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n usurp_v princely_a power_n over_o the_o church_n and_o commonweal_n with_o breach_n of_o faith_n to_o god_n and_o man_n the_o other_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n wherein_o that_o honour_n be_v give_v to_o creature_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o creator_n only_o one_o example_n may_v show_v they_o both_o even_o hildebrand_n call_v gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o his_o popedom_n who_o deprive_v henry_n the_o emperor_n of_o his_o empire_n and_o discharge_v his_o subject_n of_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n pronounce_v sentence_n with_o such_o a_o invocation_n of_o peter_n as_o a_o true_a christian_n will_v tremble_v to_o have_v hear_v use_v to_o any_o but_o to_o god_n septimo_fw-la incline_v thy_o ear_n o_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o hear_v i_o tuum_fw-la thy_o servant_n abinfantia_fw-la who_o thou_o have_v bring_v up_o from_o my_o infancy_n and_o vindicasti_fw-la have_v preserve_v to_o this_o day_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o unrighteous_a who_o hate_n and_o vex_v i_o fide_fw-la for_o my_o faith_n in_o thou_o optimus_fw-la thou_o can_v bear_v i_o witness_v best_a and_o the_o holy_a mother_n of_o christ_n and_o thy_o brother_n paul_n partaker_n with_o thou_o of_o martyrdom_n that_o i_o have_v undertake_v the_o government_n of_o the_o papacy_n unwilling_o not_o that_o i_o think_v it_o robbery_n to_o climb_v into_o thy_o see_n lawful_o but_o i_o have_v rather_o live_v in_o pilgrimage_n they_o occupy_v thy_o room_n for_o fame_n and_o glory_n only_o i_o do_v confess_v and_o good_a cause_n why_o that_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n be_v commit_v and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v &_o lose_v grant_v unto_o i_o meis_fw-la not_o through_o my_o desert_n but_o by_o thy_o grace_n fretus_fw-la trust_v therefore_o on_o this_o assurance_n for_o the_o honour_n and_o safeguard_v of_o suae_fw-la thy_o holy_a church_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n almighty_a the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o throw_v down_o king_n henry_n the_o son_n of_o henry_n sometime_o emperor_n who_o have_v lay_v hand_n too_o bold_o and_o rash_o tuam_fw-la upon_o thy_o church_n from_o his_o imperial_a and_o kingly_a government_n and_o i_o absolve_v all_o christian_n subject_n to_o the_o empire_n from_o that_o oath_n by_o the_o which_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o bear_v faith_n &_o allegiance_n unto_o true_a king_n do_v you_o see_v to_o what_o iniquity_n their_o pride_n abuse_v peter_n name_n and_o claim_v all_o by_o he_o have_v puff_v they_o up_o to_o what_o usurp_v over_o emperor_n to_o what_o dishonour_v of_o the_o almighty_a but_o of_o this_o we_o shall_v have_v fit_a occasion_n to_o confer_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o question_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n for_o the_o other_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n the_o name_n of_o head_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v make_v a_o conduit_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o pour_v they_o abroad_o into_o all_o the_o body_n be_v only_o due_a and_o proper_a unto_o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n &_o man_n the_o apostle_n of_o our_o profession_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ._n when_o the_o right_a of_o this_o title_n
be_v call_v into_o question_n every_o knee_n must_v bow_v in_o heaven_n in_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o yield_v it_o unto_o he_o who_o god_n have_v set_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n above_o all_o power_n and_o principality_n wherefore_o i_o say_v not_o if_o a_o man_n if_o leo_n who_o hope_v of_o profit_n may_v blind_v take_v himself_o for_o peter_n heir_n but_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n do_v give_v it_o unto_o peter_n shall_v i_o say_v 1.8_o with_o the_o apostle_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v i_o will_v not_o take_v on_o i_o that_o sentence_n but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v the_o sin_n be_v very_o heinous_a how_o much_o more_o heinous_a that_o it_o be_v pretend_v in_o show_n unto_o peter_n in_o deed_n by_o peter_n name_n convey_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o as_o bold_o as_o leo_n apply_v it_o to_o peter_n so_o bold_o do_v 12._o a_o cardinal_n apply_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o 1._o a_o bishop_n venture_v further_a than_o the_o cardinal_n not_o content_a to_o vouch_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v melchisedec_n excel_v the_o rest_n incomparable_o in_o priesthood_n affirm_v far_a of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n from_o who_o they_o do_v grow_v as_o member_n grow_v from_o the_o head_n and_o of_o who_o fullness_n they_o do_v all_o receive_v of_o christ_n it_o be_v write_v that_o 1.16_o of_o his_o fullness_n we_o do_v all_o receive_v that_o he_o be_v 6.20_o a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n that_o he_o be_v 4.16_o the_o head_n of_o who_o all_o the_o body_n be_v couple_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o every_o joint_a give_v to_o furnish_v it_o through_o the_o effectual_a power_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n receive_v increase_v of_o the_o body_n but_o to_o give_v these_o privilege_n unto_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v melchisedec_n the_o head_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o of_o his_o fullness_n they_o do_v all_o receive_v o_o lord_n in_o how_o miserable_a state_n be_v the_o church_n when_o this_o do_v go_v for_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v not_o the_o prophecy_n then_o fulfil_v of_o 2.4_o the_o man_n who_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n hart._n i_o marvel_v what_o you_o mean_v to_o take_v we_o up_o so_o sharp_o as_o for_o a_o heinous_a matter_n that_o we_o call_v the_o pope_n head_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o you_o give_v that_o title_n yourselves_o to_o the_o queen_n who_o it_o may_v less_o agree_v to_o so_o one_o that_o preach_v to_o we_o h●re_v not_o long_o ago_o in_o the_o tower-chappell_n do_v make_v a_o long_a talk_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n only_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o charge_v we_o with_o blasphemy_n for_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n &_o yet_o himself_o pray_v for_o the_o queen_n majesty_n do_v name_v her_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o we_o smile_v at_o his_o folly_n for_o if_o it_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n to_o call_v the_o queen_n head_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o call_v the_o pope_n head_n rainoldes_n we_o give_v unto_o her_o highness_n the_o title_n not_o of_o head_n but_o of_o 5._o supreme_a governor_n and_o that_o upon_o how_o just_a ground_n of_o god_n word_n and_o high_a commission_n from_o the_o high_a it_o shall_v in_o 1._o due_a place_n be_v show_v if_o you_o will_n as_o for_o the_o preacher_n who_o you_o mention_v i_o have_v rather_o you_o will_v deal_v with_o i_o by_o public_a monument_n and_o writing_n of_o our_o church_n as_o i_o do_v with_o you_o then_o by_o report_n of_o private_a speech_n for_o perhaps_o you_o fancy_v more_o than_o he_o say_v perhaps_o he_o say_v so_o much_o that_o you_o be_v glad_a to_o smile_v it_o out_o with_o that_o fancy_n but_o if_o your_o report_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v true_a it_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o head_n to_o the_o queen_n in_o the_o same_o meaning_n that_o we_o do_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a governor_n which_o i_o will_v prove_v to_o be_v godly_a and_o he_o deny_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n in_o a_o other_o meaning_n in_o which_o that_o name_n belong_v unto_o christ_n alone_o condemn_v they_o of_o blasphemy_n who_o give_v it_o he_o so_o and_o they_o who_o do_v smile_v hereat_o as_o at_o folly_n because_o they_o be_v papist_n might_n if_o they_o be_v paynim_n smile_v at_o the_o scripture_n too_o which_o do_v give_v the_o title_n of_o 10.35_o god_n unto_o governor_n and_o yet_o condemn_v they_o who_o have_v 2._o other_o god_n beside_o the_o lord_n for_o if_o it_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n to_o call_v the_o magistrate_n god_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o call_v 14.11_o mercurius_n and_o jupiter_n god_n be_v not_o this_o your_o reason_n but_o our_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v holy_a and_o true_a so_o it_o be_v plain_a if_o man_n will_v rather_o learn_v it_o humble_o as_o christian_n then_o laugh_v at_o it_o as_o lucian_n or_o as_o julian_n revolt_v from_o it_o for_o we_o teach_v 17._o that_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o do_v quicken_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n as_o he_o be_v the_o light_n the_o health_n the_o life_n of_o it_o and_o be_v present_a always_o to_o fill_v it_o with_o his_o blessing_n and_o with_o his_o grace_n to_o govern_v it_o in_o the_o which_o respect_n because_o body_n the_o scripture_n give_v the_o name_n of_o head_n to_o christ_n alone_o by_o a_o excellency_n thereof_o we_o so_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o we_o know_v that_o in_o a_o other_o kind_n and_o degree_n of_o resemblance_n they_o may_v be_v call_v head_n who_o have_v any_o preeminence_n of_o place_n or_o government_n over_o other_o as_o in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n we_o read_v 11.16_o the_o head_n of_o the_o levite_n for_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n the_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o chief_a priest_n after_o the_o which_o sort_n i_o will_v not_o contend_v if_o you_o entitle_v bishop_n head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o 2._o athanasius_n do_v and_o 38._o gregory_n when_o he_o have_v name_v our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n he_o call_v christ_n minister_n as_o it_o be_v head_n paul_n andrew_n john_n head_n of_o particular_a flock_n yet_o member_n of_o the_o church_n all_o under_o one_o head_n hart._n you_o grant_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o as_o i_o require_v for_o if_o either_o bishop_n or_o cardinal_n have_v give_v that_o unto_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v due_a to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v head_n proper_o we_o maintain_v they_o not_o we_o say_v that_o as_o pastor_n all_o who_o have_v the_o charge_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n be_v head_n after_o a_o sort_n that_o be_v improper_o as_o i_o term_v it_o so_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o they_o all_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n you_o must_v take_v we_o when_o we_o do_v entitle_v max._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n rainoldes_n i_o will_v take_v you_o so_o howbeit_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o head_n have_v sundry_a signification_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o speech_n as_o the_o scripture_n show_v 11.3_o god_n be_v the_o head_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o man_n man_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n 7.8_o the_o head_n of_o syria_n damascus_n the_o head_n of_o damascus_n retzin_n the_o king_n 15.17_o the_o head_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o 6.13_o the_o head_n of_o household_n the_o elder_a and_o 21.9_o the_o head_n of_o the_o people_n the_o foremost_a and_o 2.2_o the_o head_n of_o the_o mountain_n the_o high_a and_o 30.23_o the_o head_n of_o the_o spice_n the_o chief_a &_o in_o offender_n 25.4_o the_o head_n the_o principal_a and_o among_o david_n captain_n 18._o the_o head_n the_o most_o excellent_a some_o of_o the_o which_o import_n a_o preeminence_n of_o other_o thing_n not_o of_o power_n and_o they_o that_o do_v of_o power_n some_o import_n a_o great_a power_n some_o a_o lesser_a i_o will_v understand_v particular_o what_o power_n you_o give_v unto_o the_o pope_n by_o call_v he_o supreme_a head_n lest_o afterward_o we_o vary_v about_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o hart._n the_o power_n which_o we_o mean_v to_o he_o by_o this_o title_n be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o the_o world_n do_v depend_v of_o he_o in_o he_o do_v lie_v the_o power_n of_o judge_v and_o determine_v all_o cause_n of_o faith_n of_o roll_a counsel_n as_o precedent_n and_o ratify_v their_o decree_n of_o order_v and_o confirm_v bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o decide_v cause_n bring_v he_o by_o appeal_n from_o